Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n scripture_n speak_v tradition_n 3,240 5 9.1935 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A07100 A discouerie of the manifold corruptions of the Holy Scriptures by the heretikes of our daies specially the English sectaries, and of their foule dealing herein, by partial & false translations to the aduantage of their heresies, in their English Bibles vsed and authorised since the time of schisme. By Gregory Martin one of the readers of diuinitie in the English College of Rhemes. Martin, Gregory, d. 1582. 1582 (1582) STC 17503; ESTC S112358 197,731 362

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

shall_v be_v examine_v &_o discuss_v in_o this_o book_n the_o argument_n of_o every_o chapter_n with_o the_o page_n wherevery_n chapter_n begin_v chap._n 1._o that_o the_o protestant_n translate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n false_o of_o purpose_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o heresy_n through_o out_o 〈◊〉_d controversy_n pag._n 2._o chap._n 2_o against_o apostolical_a tradition_n pag._n 25._o chap._n 3_o against_o sacred_a image_n pag._n 32._o chap._n 4_o the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o word_n turn_v into_o their_o original_a an●_n profane_a signification_n pag._n 58._o chap._n 5_o against_o the_o church_n pag._n 63._o chap._n 6_o against_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n where_o much_o also_o be_v say_v of_o thei●_n profane_v of_o ecclesiastical_a word_n pag._n 72._o chap._n 7_o against_o purgatory_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o christ_n descend_v in●●_n hel._n pag._n 98._o chap._n 8_o concern_v justification_n and_o god_n justice_n in_o reward_v goo●_n work_n pag._n 133._o chap._n 9_o against_o merit_n meritorious_a work_n and_o the_o reward_n for_o th●_n same_o pag._n 140._o chap._n 10_o against_o free_n will_v pag._n 163._o chap._n 11_o for_o imputatius_n justice_n against_o true_a inherent_a justice_n pag._n 180._o chap._n 12_o for_o special_a faith_n vain_a security_n and_o only_a faith_n pag._n 187._o chap._n 13_o against_o penance_n and_o satisfaction_n pag._n 196._o chap._n 14_o against_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n namely_o baptism_n and_o confession_n pag._n 213._o chap._n 15_o against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n and_o for_o the_o marriage_n o●_n priest_n and_o votary_n pag._n 220._o chap._n 16_o against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n pag._n 244._o chap._n 17_o against_o the_o b._n sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o aliens_n pag._n 249._o chap._n 18_o against_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n namely_o of_o our_o b._n ladie●_n pag._n 273._o chap._n 19_o against_o the_o distinction_n of_o dulia_n and_o latria_n pag._n 285._o chap._n 20_o add_v to_o the_o text_n pag._n 290._o chap._n 21_o other_o heretical_a treachery_n and_o corruption_n worthy_a of_o observation_n pag._n 298._o chap._n 22_o other_o fault_n judaical_a profane_a more_o vanity_n folly_n and_o novelty_n pag._n 306._o a_o discovery_n of_o the_o manifold_a corruption_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o heretic_n of_o our_o day_n special_o the_o english_a sectary_n &_o of_o their_o foul_a deal_n herein_o by_o partial_a and_o false_a translation_n to_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o heresy_n in_o their_o english_a bibles_n use_v and_o authorise_v since_o the_o time_n of_o schism_n chap._n i._o that_o the_o protestant_n translate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n false_o of_o purpose_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o heresy_n 1_o though_n this_o shall_v evident_o appear_v through_o out_o this_o whole_a book_n in_o every_o place_n that_o shall_v be_v object_v unto_o they_o yet_o because_o it_o be_v a_o observation_n of_o great_a importance_n in_o this_o case_n and_o which_o sting_v they_o sore_o &_o touch_v their_o credit_n exceed_o in_o so_o much_o that_o one_o of_o they_o set_v a_o good_a face_n upon_o the_o matter_n 2._o matter_n confutation_n of_o io._n owlet_a fol._n 35._o pag._n 2._o say_v confident_o that_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n mistranslate_v wilful_o and_o of_o purpose_n therefore_o i_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n certain_a brief_a observation_n and_o evident_a mark_n to_o know_v wilful_a corruption_n as_o it_o be_v a_o abridgement_n and_o sum_n of_o this_o treatise_n 2_o the_o first_o mark_n and_o most_o general_a be_v if_o they_o translate_v else_o where_o not_o amiss_o translate_n evident_a mark_n or_o sign_n to_o know_v wilful_a corruption_n in_o translate_n and_o in_o place_n of_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o most_o false_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a argument_n that_o they_o do_v it_o not_o of_o negligence_n or_o ignorance_n but_o of_o partiality_n to_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n this_o be_v to_o be_v see_v through_o the_o whole_a bible_n where_o the_o fault_n of_o their_o translation_n be_v altogether_o or_o special_o in_o those_o scripture_n that_o concern_v the_o cause_n in_o question_n between_o us._n for_o other_o small_a fault_n or_o rather_o oversighte_n we_o will_v no_o further_o note_v unto_o they_o then_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o pardon_v we_o the_o like_a if_o they_o find_v they_o 3._o if_o as_o in_o their_o opinion_n &_o heresy_n they_o forsake_v the_o ancient_a father_n so_o also_o in_o their_o translation_n they_o go_v from_o that_o text_n &_o ancient_a read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o all_o the_o father_n use_v and_o expound_v be_v it_o not_o plain_a that_o their_o translation_n follow_v the_o vein_n and_o humour_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o again_o if_o they_o that_o so_o abhor_v from_o the_o ancient_a exposition_n of_o the_o father_n yet_o if_o it_o seem_v to_o serve_v for_o they_o stick_v not_o to_o make_v the_o exposition_n of_o any_o one_o doctor_n the_o very_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n what_o be_v this_o but_o heretical_a wilfulness_n see_v this_o 1._o chap._n nu_fw-la 43._o ch_z 10._o nu_fw-la 1.2_o cha_n 18._o numb_a 10.11_o and_o chap._n 19_o nu_fw-la 1._o 4_o again_o if_o they_o that_o profess_v to_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n and_o that_o because_o it_o make_v more_o for_o they_o as_o they_o say_v and_o therefore_o in_o all_o conference_n and_o disputation_n appeal_v unto_o it_o as_o to_o the_o fountain_n &_o touchstone_n if_o they_o i_o say_v in_o translate_n place_n of_o controversy_n flee_v from_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a argument_n of_o wilful_a corruption_n this_o be_v do_v many_o way_n and_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v also_o through_o out_o the_o whole_a bible_n and_o in_o all_o this_o book_n 5_o if_o the_o greek_a be_v idololatria_fw-la and_o idololátra_fw-la 1577._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eph._n 5._o col._n 3_o bib._n a_o 1577._o and_o they_o translate_v not_o idolatry_n and_o idolater_n but_o worship_v of_o image_n &_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o that_o so_o absurd_o that_o they_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v covetousness_n be_v worship_v of_o image_n this_o none_o will_v do_v but_o fool_n or_o mad_a man_n unless_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n against_o sacred_a image_n see_v chap._n 3._o numb_a 1.2_o 6_o if_o the_o apostle_n say_v a_o pagan_a idolater_n 5._o 1_o cor._n 5._o and_o a_o christian_a idolater_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o meaning_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o they_o translate_v a_o pagan_a idolater_n 1562_o bib._n a_o 1562_o &_o a_o christian_a worshipper_n of_o image_n by_o two_o distinct_a word_n and_o diverse_a meaning_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v do_v wilful_o to_o the_o foresay_a purpose_n see_v chap._n 3._o nu_fw-la 8.9_o 7_o if_o they_o translate_v one_o &_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n whensoever_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o evil_a tradition_n and_o never_o translate_v it_o so_o whensoever_o it_o speak_v of_o good_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n their_o intention_n be_v evident_a against_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n see_v chap._n 2._o numb_a 1.2.3_o yea_o if_o they_o translate_v tradition_n take_v in_o ill_a part_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o translate_v it_o not_o so_o where_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a take_v in_o good_a part_n 20._o col._n 2._o v._n 20._o it_o be_v more_o evidence_n of_o the_o foresay_a wicked_a intention_n see_v chap._n 2._o nu_fw-la 5.6_o 9_o if_o they_o make_v this_o a_o good_a rule_n to_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o usual_a signification_n and_o not_o the_o original_a derivation_n of_o word_n as_o beza_n and_o 209._o and_o pag._n 209._o m._n whitaker_n do_v and_o if_o they_o translate_v contrary_a to_o this_o rule_n what_o be_v it_o but_o wilful_a corruption_n so_o they_o do_v in_o translate_n idolum_fw-la a_o image_n presbyter_n a_o elder_a and_o the_o like_a see_v chap._n 4._o &_o chap._n 6._o nu_fw-la 6.7.8_o etc._n etc._n nu_fw-la 13._o etc._n etc._n 10_o if_o presbyter_n by_o ecclesiastical_a use_n be_v appropriate_v to_o signify_v a_o priest_n no_o less_o then_o episcopus_fw-la to_o signify_v a_o bishop_n or_o diaconus_fw-la a_o deacon_n and_o if_o they_o translate_v these_o two_o ●ater_a according_o and_o the_o first_o never_n in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n what_o can_v it_o be_v but_o wilful_a corruption_n in_o favour_n of_o this_o heresy_n 〈◊〉_d that_o there_o be_v no_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 199._o whitak_n p._n 199._o see_v chap._n 6._o numb_a 12._o 11_o if_o for_o god_n altar_n they_o translate_v temple_n &_o for_o bell_n idololatrical_a table_n they_o translate_v altar_n judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o
he_o or_o follow_v he_o which_o be_v our_o english_a caluinist_n and_o bezites_n many_o other_o way_n there_o be_v to_o make_v most_o certain_a proof_n of_o their_o wilfulness_n as_o when_o *_o 6._o calu._n heb._n 5_o 7_o &_o tit._n 3_o 6._o beza_n 2_o thessaly_n 2_o 15._o &_o 1_o 6._o the_o translation_n be_v frame_v according_a to_o their_o false_a and_o heretical_a commentary_n and_o when_o they_o will_v avouch_v their_o translation_n out_o of_o profane_a writer_n homer_n plutarch_n pliny_n tully_n virgil_n and_o terence_n and_o reject_v the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o word_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n which_o beza_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n always_o but_o it_o be_v infinite_a to_o note_v all_o the_o mark_n and_o by_o these_o the_o wise_a reader_n may_v conceive_v the_o rest_n 55_o but_o will_v you_o think_v that_o these_o man_n can_v notwithstanding_o speak_v very_o grave_o and_o honest_o against_o voluntary_a and_o wilful_a translation_n of_o scripture_n that_o so_o notorious_o offend_v therein_o themselves_o harken_v what_o beza_n say_v against_o castaleo_n and_o the_o like_a 46._o annot._n act_n 10._o v._n 46._o the_o matter_n say_v he_o be_v now_o come_v to_o this_o point_n that_o the_o traslatour_n of_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a into_o latin_a or_o into_o any_o other_o tongue_n think_v that_o they_o may_v lawful_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o translate_n who_o if_o a_o man_n reprehend_v he_o shall_v be_v answer_v by_o and_o by_o that_o they_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o manslatour_n not_o that_o translate_v word_n for_o word_n but_o that_o express_v the_o sense_n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o while_o every_o man_n will_v rather_o free_o follow_v his_o own_o judgement_n then_o be_v a_o religious_a interpreter_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o do_v rather_o pervert_v many_o thing_n than_o translate_v they_o be_v not_o this_o well-said_a if_o he_o have_v do_v according_o but_o do_v the_o clean_a contrary_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v he_o be_v a_o dissemble_a hypocrite_n in_o so_o say_v &_o a_o wilful_a heretic_n in_o so_o do_v and_o condemn_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n 56_o but_o after_o this_o general_a view_n of_o their_o wilful_a purpose_n and_o heretical_a intention_n let_v we_o examine_v their_o false_a translation_n more_o particular_o and_o argue_v the_o case_n with_o they_o more_o at_o large_a &_o press_v they_o to_o answer_n whether_o in_o their_o conscience_n it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o as_o hitherto_o be_v say_v and_o that_o by_o several_a chapter_n of_o such_o controversy_n as_o their_o corruption_n concern_v and_o first_o of_o all_o without_o further_a curiosity_n whence_o to_o begin_v in_o case_n so_o indifferent_a of_o tradition_n chap._n ii_o heretical_a translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n against_o apostolical_a tradition_n 1_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o importance_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v grant_v any_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o pretend_v the_o write_v word_n only_o they_o know_v that_o by_o 15._o by_o see_v the_o annotation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 2_o thess_n 2_o 15._o such_o tradition_n mention_v in_o all_o antiquity_n their_o religion_n be_v whole_o deface_v and_o overthrow_v for_o remedy_v whereof_o and_o for_o the_o deface_a of_o all_o such_o tradition_n they_o bend_v their_o translation_n against_o they_o in_o this_o wonderful_a manner_n wheresoever_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v against_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n partly_o frivolous_a partly_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n there_o all_o the_o english_a translation_n follow_v the_o greek_a exact_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d never_o omit_v this_o word_n tradition_n contrariwise_o wheresoever_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o tradition_n to_o wit_n such_o tradition_n as_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n there_o all_o their_o say_a translation_n agree_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o greek_a which_o be_v still_o the_o self_n same_o word_n but_o for_o tradition_n they_o translate_v ordinance_n or_o instruction_n why_o so_o and_o to_o what_o purpose_n we_o appeal_v to_o the_o worm_n of_o their_o conscience_n which_o continual_o accuse_v they_o of_o a_o heretical_a meaning_n whether_o by_o urge_v the_o word_n tradition_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v discommend_v and_o by_o suppress_v the_o word_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v commend_v their_o purpose_n and_o intent_n be_v not_o to_o signify_v to_o the_o reader_n that_o all_o tradition_n be_v naught_o &_o none_o good_a all_o reprovable_a none_o allowable_a 2_o for_o example_n mat._n 15._o thus_o they_o translate_v why_o do_v thy_o disciple_n transgress_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o why_o do_v you_o also_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o your_o tradition_n and_o again_o thus_o have_v you_o make_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o no_o effect_n by_o your_o tradition_n here_o i_o warrant_v you_o all_o the_o bell_n sound_a tradition_n and_o the_o word_n be_v never_o omit_v and_o it_o be_v very_o well_o and_o honest_o translate_v for_o so_o the_o greek_a word_n do_v propre_o signify_v but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n concern_v good_a tradition_n let_v we_o see_v their_o deal_n the_o apostle_n by_o the_o self_n same_o word_n both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a say_v thus_o 6._o 2_o thes_n 2._o v._n 15_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d traditiones_fw-la 2_o thess_n 3_o 6._o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v &_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learned_a either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n and_o again_o withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o every_o brother_n walk_v inordinate_o &_o not_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o us._n 〈◊〉_d 1_o cor._n 11_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a which_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v i_o praise_v you_o brethren_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o be_v mindful_a of_o i_o and_o as_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o you_o keep_v my_o tradition_n 3_o here_o we_o see_v plain_a mention_n of_o s._n paul_n tradition_n and_o consequent_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n yea_o and_o tradition_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n deliver_v to_o the_o say_a church_n without_o writing_n or_o scripture_n in_o all_o which_o place_n look_v gentle_a reader_n &_o seek_v all_o their_o english_a translation_n &_o thou_o shall_v lie_n shall_v yet_o m._n fulke_n say_v it_o be_v find_v there_o pag._n 153_o against_o d._n sand._n rock_n if_o he_o give_v not_o we_o a_o instance_n let_v he_o give_v himself_o the_o lie_n not_o once_o find_v the_o word_n tradition_n but_o in_o steed_n thereof_o ordinance_n instruction_n preach_n institution_n and_o any_o word_n else_o rather_o then_o tradition_n in_o so_o much_o that_o beza_n their_o master_n translate_v it_o traditam_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la the_o doctrine_n deliver_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d put_v the_o singular_a number_n for_o the_o plural_a &_o add_v doctrine_n of_o his_o own_o so_o frame_v the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o his_o false_a commentary_n or_o rather_o put_v his_o commentary_n in_o the_o text_n &_o make_v it_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n who_o will_v think_v their_o malice_n and_o partiality_n against_o tradition_n be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o shall_v all_o agree_v with_o one_o consent_n so_o due_o and_o exact_o in_o these_o and_o these_o place_n to_o conceal_v the_o word_n which_o in_o other_o place_n do_v so_o glad_o use_v it_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v all_o one_o in_o all_o the_o say_a place_n 4_o yea_o they_o do_v else_o where_o so_o glad_o use_v this_o word_n tradition_n when_o it_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o discredit_n thereof_o that_o they_o put_v the_o say_a word_n in_o all_o their_o english_a bibles_n with_o the_o like_a full_a consent_n as_o before_o when_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a at_o al._n as_o when_o they_o translate_v thus_o 2.20_o col._n 2.20_o if_o you_o be_v dead_a with_o christ_n from_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d why_o as_o though_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v you_o lead_v with_o tradition_n &_o as_o a_o other_o 1579._o other_o of_o the_o year_n 1579._o english_a translation_n of_o they_o read_v more_o heretical_o why_o be_v you_o burden_v with_o tradition_n tell_v we_o sincere_o you_o that_o profess_v to_o have_v skill_n in_o the_o greek_a &_o to_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a tell_v we_o we_o beseech_v you_o whether_o this_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v tradition_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v lead_v or_o burden_v with_o tradition_n you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o do_v not_o so_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d col._n 2_o 14._o ephes_n 2_o 15._o 〈◊〉_d
and_o monument_n of_o christ_n be_v &_o do_v upon_o the_o earth_n you_o will_v not_o be_v try_v by_o s._n hierom._n and_o again_o why_o s._n paul_n shall_v say_v that_o by_o faith_n he_o adore_v &_o in_o respect_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o easy_a to_o understand_v but_o that_o he_o partly_o foresee_v the_o kingdom_n of_o ephraim_n in_o the_o posterity_n of_o joseph_n partly_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n prefigure_v in_o joseph_n then_o prince_n of_o egypt_n &_o so_o by_o faith_n adore_v his_o sceptre_n or_o towards_o his_o sceptre_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o the_o greek_a father_n for_o the_o most_o part_n expound_v it_o but_o let_v we_o hasten_v towards_o a_o end_n chap._n xx._n heretical_a translation_n by_o add_v to_o the_o text_n 1_o because_n in_o the_o last_o corruption_n i_o speak_v of_o add_v to_o the_o text_n though_o it_o be_v their_o common_a and_o universal_a fault_n in_o every_o controversy_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o every_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n yet_o here_o i_o will_v add_v certain_a place_n not_o yet_o mention_v as_o 1562._o 2_o paral._n 36._o v._o 8._o in_o bib._n 1562._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o act_n of_o jehoakim_n and_o his_o abomination_n which_o he_o do_v and_o carve_a image_n that_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n behold_v they_o be_v write_v etc._n etc._n these_o word_n image_n against_o image_n carve_a image_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n be_v more_o than_o be_v either_o in_o the_o greek_a or_o the_o hebrew_n 2_o again_o 1577._o act._n 9_o v._n 22._o bib._n 1577._o saul_n confound_v the_o jew_n prove_v by_o confer_v one_o scripture_n with_o a_o other_o that_o this_o be_v very_a christ_n these_o word_n etc._n for_o conference_n of_o scripture_n against_o father_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n by_o confer_v one_o scripture_n with_o another_o be_v add_v more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o presumptuous_a opinion_n that_o conference_n of_o scripture_n be_v enough_o for_o any_o man_n to_o understand_v they_o and_o so_o to_o reject_v both_o the_o commentary_n of_o the_o doctor_n &_o exposition_n of_o holy_a counsel_n and_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v so_o much_o more_o i_o say_v then_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n and_o a_o notorious_a corruption_n in_o their_o bible_n read_v daily_o in_o their_o church_n as_o most_o authentical_a see_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o bibles_n and_o thou_o shall_v find_v no_o more_o for_o all_o those_o word_n but_o affirm_v or_o confirm_v 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d c._n 2._o v._n 16._o and_o the_o self_n same_o bible_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n translate_v the_o same_o greek_a word_n thus_o who_o shall_v instruct_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o deed_n that_o be_v the_o true_a and_o usual_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n both_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o new_a as_o deut._n 4._o thou_o shall_v teach_v they_o thy_o child_n and_o esa_n 40._o who_o shall_v instruct_v our_o lord_n the_o hebrew_n word_n also_o in_o both_o place_n signify_v no_o more_o but_o instruct_v and_o teach_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n cite_v it_o to_o the_o corinthian_n out_o of_o esay_n &_o he_o use_v it_o to_o the_o colos_n c._n 2._o v._n 2_o in_o the_o same_o signification_n as_o the_o church_n read_v and_o expound_v it_o and_o so_o consequent_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o place_n whereof_o we_o now_o treat_v say_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o s._n paul_n earnest_o teach_v or_o instruct_v they_o that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n and_o yet_o our_o new_a translator_n without_o respect_n of_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a have_v coin_v a_o new_a signification_n of_o confer_v one_o scripture_n with_o a_o other_o so_o ignorant_a they_o be_v in_o the_o signification_n of_o greek_a word_n or_o rather_o so_o wilful_o malicious_a 3_o again_o tradition_n 1_o pet._n 1._o v._n 25._o bib._n 1562._o 1577._o against_o tradition_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n they_o translate_v thus_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v ever_o and_o this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v unto_o you_o where_o these_o word_n by_o the_o gospel_n be_v add_v deceitful_o and_o of_o ill_a intent_n to_o make_v the_o reader_n think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o write_v word_n for_o the_o common_a reader_n hear_v this_o word_n gospel_n conceive_v nothing_o else_o but_o in_o deed_n all_o be_v the_o gospel_n whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n teach_v either_o by_o writing_n or_o by_o tradition_n and_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v 2._o thess_n 2._o and_o s._n peter_n say_v nothing_o else_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v preach_v among_o you_o as_o the_o geneva_n bible_n translate_v or_o more_o significant_o which_o be_v evangelize_v among_o you_o as_o we_o translate_v for_o though_o there_o be_v great_a significancie_n in_o the_o greek_a word_n then_o be_v express_v by_o bare_a preach_n or_o tell_v a_o thing_n as_o have_v a_o goodly_a relation_n and_o allusion_n to_o the_o word_n euangelium_fw-la gospel_n euangelizo_fw-la euangelizo_fw-la yet_o neither_o do_v they_o in_o any_o other_o place_n neither_o can_v they_o translate_v it_o to_o preach_v by_o the_o gospel_n but_o simple_o to_o preach_v to_o tell_v to_o show_v as_o preach_v peace_n by_o jesus_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 10._o v._n 36._o so_o themselves_o translate_v it_o and_o ps_n 95_o or_o 96._o v._o 2_o be_v tell_v of_o his_o salvation_n from_o day_n to_o day_n which_o in_o other_o place_n be_v speak_v by_o other_o greek_a word_n that_o have_v no_o signification_n at_o all_o of_o gospel_n as_o immediate_o in_o the_o say_v ps_n 95_o or_o 96._o v._o 3_o &_o ps_n 104._o or_o 105._o v._o 1._o &_o act._n 13._o v._n 5._o and_o c._n 17._o v._n 23._o and_o io._n 1._o vers_fw-la 3._o 4_o all_o which_o word_n signify_v only_o to_o tell_v to_o show_v to_o declare_v and_o be_v use_v indifferent_o for_o &_o with_o the_o other_o word_n which_o they_o here_o only_o translate_v to_o preach_v by_o the_o gospel_n whereas_o in_o all_o other_o place_n when_o they_o will_v translate_v it_o most_o significant_o 8._o luc._n 2._o v._n 10._o act._n 13._o v._n 32._o gal._n 3_o 8._o they_o express_v it_o by_o bring_v glad_a tiding_n and_o in_o some_o place_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v express_v most_o significant_o in_o respect_n of_o evangelize_a or_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 40._o dominus_fw-la dabit_fw-la verbum_fw-la evangelizantibus_fw-la qui_fw-la euangelizas_fw-la jerusalem_n ps_n 67._o isa_n 40._o there_o they_o translate_v it_o bare_o preacher_n &_o preach_v only_a s._n peter_n place_n aforesaid_a must_v be_v stretch_v to_o signify_v the_o word_n preach_v by_o the_o gospel_n to_o insinuate_v &_o uphold_v their_o heresy_n of_o the_o write_v gospel_n only_o or_o only_o write_v word_n against_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o write_v if_o this_o be_v not_o their_o meaning_n let_v they_o give_v we_o a_o good_a reason_n why_o they_o translate_v it_o so_o in_o this_o one_o place_n only_o 5_o it_o be_v write_v of_o luther_n that_o he_o for_o the_o self_n same_o heresy_n 88_o lind._o dubit_fw-la pag._n 88_o in_o his_o first_o translation_n into_o the_o german_a tongue_n leave_v out_o these_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n altogether_o this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v evangelize_v or_o preach_v to_o you_o why_o so_o because_o s._n peter_n do_v here_o define_v what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v that_o which_o be_v preach_v to_o you_o &_o not_o that_o only_o which_o be_v write_v which_o false_a deal_n of_o luther_n be_v no_o small_a presumption_n against_o the_o like_a heretical_a meaning_n of_o our_o english_a protestant_n who_o i_o be_o sure_a in_o this_o point_n of_o controversy_n of_o the_o word_n write_v &_o unwrite_v will_v not_o deny_v that_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o lutheran_n 6_o again_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n 6._o ja._n 4._o v._n 6._o they_o add_v the_o word_n scripture_n into_o the_o text_n say_v but_o the_o scripture_n offer_v more_o grace_n where_o the_o apostle_n may_v say_v as_o well_o and_o indifferent_o the_o spirit_n or_o holy_a ghost_n give_v more_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v much_o more_o probable_a and_o be_v so_o expound_v of_o many_o let_v the_o good_a reader_n see_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n and_o abhor_v their_o sauciness_n in_o the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 7_o one_o addition_n of_o they_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o but_o only_o to_o know_v the_o reason_n why_o they_o do_v it_o because_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o
a_o discovery_n of_o the_o manifold_a corruption_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o heretic_n of_o our_o day_n special_o the_o english_a sectary_n and_o of_o their_o foul_a deal_n herein_o by_o partial_a &_o false_a translation_n to_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o heresy_n in_o their_o english_a bibles_n use_v and_o authorise_v since_o the_o time_n of_o schism_n by_o gregory_n martin_n one_o of_o the_o reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o english_a college_n of_o rheims_n 2_o cor._n 2._o non_fw-la sumus_fw-la sicut_fw-la plurimi_fw-la adulterantes_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la sinceritate_fw-la sed_fw-la sicut_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la coram_fw-la deo_fw-la in_fw-la christo_fw-la loquimur_fw-la that_o be_v we_o be_v not_o as_o very_o many_o adulterate_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o of_o sincerity_n &_o as_o of_o god_n before_o god_n in_o christ_n we_o speak_v print_a at_o rheims_n by_o john_n fogny_n 1582._o the_o preface_n contain_v five_o sundry_a abuse_n or_o corruption_n of_o holy_a scripture_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n &_o agre_v special_o to_o these_o of_o our_o time_n with_o many_o other_o necessary_a advertisement_n to_o the_o reader_n scripture_n heretic_n five_o way_n special_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n as_o it_o have_v be_v always_o the_o fashion_n of_o heretic_n to_o pretend_v scripture_n for_o show_v of_o their_o cause_n so_o have_v it_o be_v also_o their_o custom_n and_o property_n to_o abuse_v the_o say_a scripture_n many_o way_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o error_n book_n 1_o deny_v certain_a book_n or_o part_n of_o book_n 1_o one_o way_n be_v to_o deny_v whole_a book_n thereof_o or_o part_n of_o book_n when_o they_o be_v evident_o against_o they_o so_o do_v for_o example_n ebion_n all_o s._n paul_n epistle_n manicheus_fw-la the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n alogiani_n s._n johns_n gospel_n martion_n many_o piece_n of_o s._n luke_n gospel_n and_o so_o do_v both_o these_o and_o other_o heretic_n in_o other_o book_n deny_v and_o allow_a what_o they_o listen_v as_o be_v evident_a by_o s._n ireneus_fw-la s._n epiphanius_n s._n augustine_n and_o all_o antiquity_n question_n 2_o doubt_v of_o their_o authority_n and_o call_v they_o into_o question_n 2_o a_o other_o way_n be_v to_o call_v into_o question_n at_o the_o least_o and_o make_v some_o doubt_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o certain_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n thereby_o to_o diminish_v their_o credit_n so_o do_v manicheus_fw-la affirm_v of_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n that_o it_o be_v not_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o peculiar_o of_o s._n matthewes_n gospel_n that_o it_o be_v some_o other_o man_n under_o his_o name_n and_o therefore_o not_o of_o such_o credit_n but_o that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o part_n be_v refuse_v so_o do_v martion_n &_o the_o arian_n deny_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n to_o be_v s._n paul_n epiphan_n li._n 2._o haer_fw-mi 69_o euseb_n li._n 4._o hist_o c._n 27._o &_o alogiani_n the_o apocalypse_n to_o be_v s._n johns_n the_o evangelist_n epiph._n &_o august_n in_fw-it haer_fw-mi alogianorum_n heresy_n 3_o voluntary_a exposition_n according_a to_o every_o one_o fancy_n or_o heresy_n 3_o a_o other_o way_n be_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n after_o their_o own_o private_a conceit_n and_o fantasy_n not_o according_a to_o the_o approve_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ancient_a father_n and_o catholic_a church_n so_o do_v theodorus_n mopsuestites_fw-la act._n synod_n 5._o affirm_v of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o psalm_n that_o they_o speak_v not_o evident_o of_o christ_n but_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v voluntary_o draw_v those_o say_n unto_o christ_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o other_o matter_n so_o do_v all_o heretic_n that_o will_v seem_v to_o ground_v their_o heresy_n upon_o scripture_n &_o to_o avouch_v they_o by_o scripture_n expound_v according_a to_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o imagination_n princ_fw-la 4_o change_a some_o word_n or_o sentence_n of_o the_o very_a original_a text_n tertul._n count_n marcio_n li._n 1._o in_o princ_fw-la 4_o a_o other_o way_n be_v to_o alter_v the_o very_a original_a text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o add_v take_v away_o or_o change_v it_o here_o and_o there_o for_o their_o purpose_n so_o do_v the_o arian_n in_o sundry_a place_n and_o the_o nestorian_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n and_o especial_o martion_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v must_n ponticus_n the_o mouse_n of_o pontus_n because_o he_o have_v gnaw_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a place_n with_o his_o corruption_n whereof_o some_o be_v say_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n until_o this_o day_n 5._o tertull._n li._n 5._o translation_n 5_o false_a and_o heretical_a translation_n 5_o a_o other_o way_n be_v to_o make_v false_a translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n so_o do_v the_o arian_n as_o s._n hierom_n note_v in_o 26._o esa_n read_v and_o translate_v proverb_n 8._o dominus_fw-la creavit_fw-la i_o in_fw-la initio_fw-la viarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la that_o be_v the_o lord_n create_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d possedit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o to_o make_v christ_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n a_o more_o creature_n s._n augustin_n also_o li._n 5._o cont._n julian._n c._n 2._o note_v it_o as_o the_o interpretation_n of_o some_o pelagian_n gen._n 3._o fecerunt_fw-la sibi_fw-la vesti_fw-la menta_fw-la for_o perizómata_fw-la or_o campestria_fw-la that_o be_v they_o make_v themselves_o garment_n whereas_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v breech_n or_o apron_n proper_a &_o peculiar_a to_o cover_v the_o secret_a part_n again_o the_o self_n same_o heretic_n do_v read_v false_o ro._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d aug._n ep_v 89._o &_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la pec_fw-la mer._n ca_fw-mi 11._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d regnavit_fw-la mors_fw-la ab_fw-la adam_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la moysen_n etiam_fw-la in_o eos_fw-la qui_fw-la peccaverunt_fw-la in_o similitudinem_fw-la praevaricationis_fw-la adae_fw-la that_o be_v death_n reign_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n even_o on_o they_o that_o sin_v after_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o prevarication_n of_o adam_n to_o maintain_v their_o heresy_n against_o original_a sin_n that_o none_o be_v infect_v therewith_o or_o subject_n to_o death_n &_o damnation_n but_o by_o sin_v actual_o as_o adam_n do_v thus_o do_v the_o old_a heretic_n 6_o what_o these_o of_o our_o day_n be_v it_o credible_a that_o be_v so_o well_o warn_v by_o the_o condemnation_n and_o detestation_n of_o they_o they_o also_o will_v be_v as_o mad_a and_o as_o impious_a as_o those_o heretic_n gentle_a reader_n be_v always_o like_o heretic_n and_o howsoever_o they_o differ_v in_o opinion_n or_o name_n yet_o in_o this_o point_n they_o agree_v to_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n for_o their_o purpose_n by_o all_o mean_n possible_o i_o will_v but_o touch_v four_o point_n of_o the_o five_o before_o mention_v because_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o stay_v upon_o the_o last_o only_o and_o to_o decipher_v their_o corrupt_a translation_n scripture_n that_o the_o protestant_n and_o caluiniste_n use_v the_o foresay_a five_o mean_n of_o deface_v the_o scripture_n but_o if_o i_o will_v stand_v upon_o the_o other_o also_o be_v it_o not_o easy_a to_o show_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o procede_v against_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v be_v thus_o to_o deny_v some_o whole_a book_n and_o part_n of_o book_n to_o call_v other_o some_o into_o question_n to_o expound_v the_o rest_n at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o pick_v quarrel_n to_o the_o very_a original_n and_o canonical_a text_n to_o fester_v and_o infect_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o bible_n with_o canker_a translation_n 7_o do_v not_o luther_n deny_v s._n james_n epistle_n and_o so_o contemn_v it_o that_o he_o call_v it_o a_o epistle_n of_o straw_n &_o not_o worthy_a of_o a_o apostolical_a spirit_n must_v i_o prove_v this_o to_o m._n whitaker_n who_o will_v never_o have_v *_o 11._o cont._n rat_n edm._n camp_n pag._n 11._o deny_v it_o so_o vehement_o in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n for_o shame_n if_o he_o have_v not_o think_v it_o more_o shame_n to_o grant_v it_o i_o need_v not_o go_v far_o for_o the_o matter_n ask_v m._n fulke_o jacob_n retent_a pag._n 32._o do_v of_o the_o rock_n p._n 307._o luther_n in_o novo_fw-la test_n germa_n in_o pref._n jacob_n and_o he_o will_v flat_o confess_v it_o be_v so_o ask_v caluin_n in_o arg_n ep_v jacobi_fw-la ask_v flaccus_n illyricus_n in_o argum_fw-la ep_v jacobi_fw-la and_o you_o shall_v perceive_v it_o be_v very_o true_a i_o will_v not_o send_v you_o to_o the_o catholic_a german_n and_o other_o both_o of_o his_o own_o time_n and_o after_o that_o write_v against_o he_o in_o the_o question_n of_o justification_n among_o who_o not_o one_o omit_v this_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o famous_a and_o infamous_a to_o the_o confusion_n of_o
interpret_v and_o draw_v on_o to_o a_o other_o signification_n 45_o we_o reply_v again_o and_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o be_v not_o the_o credit_n of_o those_o septuaginta_fw-la interpreter_n who_o themselves_o be_v jew_n and_o best_a learn_v in_o their_o own_o tongue_n and_o as_o s._n augustine_n often_o and_o other_o ancient_a father_n say_v be_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o translate_n the_o hebrew_n bible_n into_o greek_a be_v not_o their_o credit_n i_o say_v in_o determine_v and_o define_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n far_o great_a than_o you_o no._n be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a that_o follow_v they_o equivalent_a in_o this_o case_n to_o your_o judgement_n no_o say_v they_o but_o because_o we_o find_v some_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o hebrew_n we_o will_v take_v the_o advantage_n and_o we_o will_v determine_v and_o limit_v it_o to_o our_o purpose_n 46_o a_o gain_n we_o condescend_v to_o their_o wilfulness_n and_o say_v what_o if_o the_o hebrew_n be_v not_o ambiguous_a but_o so_o plain_a &_o certain_a to_o signify_v onething_fw-mi 〈◊〉_d psal_n 15._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v plain_o as_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n which_o prove_v for_o we_o that_o christ_n in_o soul_n descend_v into_o hel._n be_v not_o the_o one_o hebrew_n word_n as_o proper_a for_o soul_n as_o anima_fw-la in_o latin_a the_o other_o as_o proper_a and_o usual_a for_o hell_n as_o infeunus_n in_o latin_a here_o then_o at_o the_o least_o will_v you_o yield_v no_o say_v they_o not_o here_o neither_o for_o beza_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n which_o common_o and_o usual_o signify_v soul_n yet_o for_o a_o purpose_n of_o a_o man_n will_v strain_v it_o may_v signify_v not_o only_a body_n but_o also_o carcase_n and_o so_o he_o translate_v that_o but_o beza_n say_v we_o be_v admonish_v by_o his_o friend_n correct_v it_o in_o his_o late_a edition_n yea_o say_v they_o he_o be_v content_a to_o change_v his_o translation_n but_o not_o his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o hebrew_n word_n as_o himself_o protest_v 47_o well_o then_o do_v it_o like_o you_o to_o read_v thus_o according_a to_o beza_n translation_n thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o carcase_n in_o the_o grave_n no_o we_o be_v content_a to_o alter_v the_o word_n carcase_n which_o be_v not_o a_o seemly_a word_n for_o our_o saviour_n body_n and_o yet_o we_o be_v loath_a to_o say_v soul_n but_o if_o we_o may_v we_o will_v say_v rather_o life_n person_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o our_o bibles_n but_o as_o for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n that_o signify_v hell_n though_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a bible_n through_o out_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n in_o all_o their_o write_n as_o occasion_n serve_v do_v so_o read_v it_o and_o understand_v it_o yet_o will_v we_o never_o so_o translate_v it_o but_o for_o hell_n we_o will_v say_v grave_a in_o all_o such_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o may_v infer_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la if_o we_o shall_v translate_v hel._n these_o be_v their_o shift_n and_o turninge_n and_o windinge_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n 48_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o ask_v they_o will_v you_o be_v try_v by_o the_o ancient_a latin_a translation_n which_o be_v the_o text_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n no_o but_o we_o appeal_v to_o the_o greek_a what_o greek_a say_v we_o for_o there_o be_v sundry_a copy_n and_o the_o best_a of_o they_o as_o beza_n confess_v agree_v with_o the_o say_v ancient_a latin_n for_o example_n in_o s._n peter_n word_n 1._o 2_o pet._n ca._n 1._o labour_v that_o by_o good_a work_n you_o may_v make_v sure_a your_o vocation_n and_o election_n do_v this_o greek_a copy_n please_v you_o no_o say_v they_o we_o appeal_v to_o that_o greek_a copy_n which_o have_v not_o those_o word_n by_o good_a work_n for_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o merit_n and_o efficacy_n of_o good_a work_n towards_o salvation_n and_o general_o to_o tell_v you_o at_o once_o by_o what_o greeke_n we_o will_v be_v try_v we_o like_v best_a the_o vulgar_a greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v most_o common_a and_o in_o every_o man_n hand_n 49_o well_o say_v we_o if_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o so_o take_v your_o pleasure_n in_o choose_v your_o text_n and_o if_o you_o will_v stand_v to_o it_o grant_v we_o that_o peter_n be_v chief_a among_o the_o apostle_n because_o your_o own_o greek_a text_n say_v the_o first_o peter_n no_o say_v beza_n 10._o mat._n 10._o we_o will_v grant_v you_o no_o such_o thing_n for_o these_o word_n be_v add_v to_o the_o greek_a text_n by_o one_o that_o favour_v peter_n primacy_n be_v it_o so_o then_o you_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o this_o greek_a text_n neither_o not_o in_o this_o place_n say_v beza_n 50_o let_v we_o see_v a_o other_o place_n you_o must_v grant_v we_o say_v we_o by_o this_o greek_a text_n that_o christ_n very_a blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o be_v real_o in_o the_o chalice_n because_o s._n luke_n say_v so_o in_o the_o greek_a text_n no_o say_v beza_n those_o greek_a word_n come_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n &_o therefore_o i_o translate_v not_o according_a to_o they_o but_o according_a to_o that_o which_o i_o think_v the_o true_a greek_a text_n although_o i_o find_v it_o in_o no_o copy_n in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o his_o do_v 11._o do_v see_v chap._n 1._o nu_fw-la 37._o chap._n 17._o nu_fw-la 11._o be_v maintain_v &_o justify_v by_o our_o english_a protestant_n in_o their_o write_n of_o late_a 51_o well_o yet_o say_v we_o there_o be_v place_n in_o the_o same_o greek_a text_n as_o plain_a for_o we_o as_o these_o now_o cite_v where_o you_o can_v not_o say_v it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n or_o 2._o 2_o thess_n 2._o it_o be_v add_v false_o to_o the_o text_n as_o stand_v and_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o text_n we_o require_v that_o you_o grant_v we_o tradition_n deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o well_o as_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n no_o say_v they_o we_o know_v the_o greek_a word_n signify_v tradition_n as_o plain_a as_o possible_o but_o here_o and_o in_o the_o like_a place_n we_o rather_o translate_v it_o ordinance_n instruction_n and_o what_o else_o soever_o nay_o sir_n say_v we_o you_o can_v not_o so_o answer_n the_o matter_n for_o in_o other_o place_n you_o translate_v it_o due_o and_o true_o tradition_n and_o why_o more_o in_o one_o place_n then_o in_o a_o other_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o tell_v why_o but_o they_o must_v tell_v and_o shame_n both_o themselves_o and_o the_o devil_n if_o ever_o they_o think_v it_o good_a to_o answer_n this_o treatise_n as_o also_o why_o they_o change_v congregation_n which_o be_v always_o in_o their_o first_o translation_n into_o church_n in_o their_o late_a translation_n &_o do_v not_o change_v likewise_o ordinance_n into_o tradition_n elder_n into_o priest_n 52_o the_o cause_n be_v that_o the_o name_n of_o church_n be_v at_o the_o first_o odious_a unto_o they_o because_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o stand_v against_o they_o but_o afterward_o this_o name_n grew_n into_o more_o favour_n with_o they_o because_o of_o their_o english_a church_n so_o at_o length_n call_v and_o term_v but_o their_o hatred_n of_o priest_n and_o tradition_n continue_v still_o as_o it_o first_o begin_v and_o therefore_o their_o translation_n also_o remain_v as_o before_o suppress_v the_o name_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o but_o of_o all_o these_o their_o deal_n they_o shall_v be_v tell_v in_o their_o several_a chapter_n and_o place_n 53_o to_o conclude_v as_o i_o begin_v concern_v their_o shift_n and_o jump_v and_o windinge_n and_o turninge_n every_o way_n from_o one_o thing_n to_o a_o other_o till_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o the_o extreme_a refuge_n of_o palpable_a corruption_n and_o false_a translation_n consider_v with_o i_o in_o this_o one_o case_n only_o of_o tradition_n as_o may_v be_v likewise_o consider_v in_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n counsel_n antiquity_n universality_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n allow_v tradition_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v they_o the_o latin_a text_n have_v they_o the_o greek_a text_n have_v they_o only_o their_o translation_n have_v they_o not_o likewise_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o approve_a latin_a text_n have_v such_o and_o such_o speech_n that_o make_v for_o we_o the_o renowned_a greek_a text_n have_v it_o the_o hebrew_n text_n have_v it_o only_o their_o translation_n have_v it_o not_o these_o be_v the_o translation_n which_o we_o call_v heretical_a and_o wilful_a and_o which_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o as_o a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n &_o in_o other_o place_n yourselves_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ordinance_n decree_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v be_v as_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_n it_o be_v quid_fw-la decernitis_fw-la why_o do_v you_o ordain_v or_o decree_v or_o why_o be_v you_o lead_v with_o decree_n 5_o justify_v your_o translation_n if_o you_o can_v either_o out_o of_o scripture_n father_n or_o lexicon_n and_o make_v we_o a_o good_a reason_n why_o you_o put_v the_o word_n tradition_n here_o contrary_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o translate_v ordinance_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n clean_o contrary_a where_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o will_v not_o put_v it_o in_o the_o place_n before_o where_o you_o know_v it_o be_v most_o evident_o in_o the_o greek_a yea_o you_o must_v tell_v we_o why_o you_o translate_v for_o tradition_n ordinance_n and_o contrary_a for_o ordinance_n tradition_n so_o turn_v cat_n in_o pan_n as_o they_o say_v at_o your_o pleasure_n and_o wrest_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o one_o end_n that_o you_o may_v make_v the_o very_a name_n of_o tradition_n odious_a among_o the_o people_n be_v they_o never_o so_o authentical_a even_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o your_o conscience_n know_v and_o you_o shall_v answer_n for_o it_o at_o the_o dreadful_a day_n 6_o somewhat_o more_o excusable_a it_o be_v but_o yet_o procede_v of_o the_o same_o heretical_a humour_n and_o on_o your_o part_n that_o shall_v exact_o follow_v the_o greek_a false_o translate_v when_o you_o translate_v in_o s._n peter_n epistle_n thus_o 18._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 18._o you_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n receive_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n where_o the_o greek_a be_v thus_o rather_o to_o be_v translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o your_o vain_a conversation_n deliver_v by_o the_o father_n but_o your_o finger_n itch_v to_o foist_v in_o the_o word_n tradition_n and_o for_o deliver_v to_o say_v receive_v because_o it_o be_v the_o phrase_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o it_o have_v receive_v many_o thing_n by_o tradition_n which_o you_o will_v here_o control_v by_o likeness_n of_o word_n in_o this_o false_a translation_n 7_o but_o concern_v the_o word_n tradition_n you_o will_v say_v perhaps_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v include_v in_o the_o greek_a word_n deliver_v we_o grant_v but_o will_v you_o be_v content_a if_o we_o shall_v always_o express_o add_v tradition_n where_o it_o be_v so_o include_v then_o shall_v we_o say_v 1_o cor._n 11_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d tradidi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o praise_v you_o that_o as_o i_o have_v deliver_v you_o by_o tradition_n you_o keep_v my_o precept_n or_o tradition_n and_o again_o v._n 23._o for_o i_o receive_v of_o our_o lord_n which_o also_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o by_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n and_o luc._n 1._o v._n 2._o as_o they_o by_o tradition_n deliver_v unto_o we_o which_o from_o the_o beginning_n see_v etc._n etc._n and_o such_o like_a by_o your_o example_n we_o shall_v translate_v in_o this_o sort_n but_o we_o use_v not_o this_o licentious_a manner_n in_o translate_n holy_a scripture_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o translator_n part_n but_o a_o interpreter_n and_o his_o that_o make_v a_o commentary_n neither_o do_v a_o good_a cause_n need_v other_o translation_n than_o the_o express_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n give_v 8_o and_o if_o you_o will_v yet_o say_v that_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n have_v here_o the_o word_n tradition_n we_o grant_v it_o have_v so_o and_o therefore_o we_o also_o translate_v according_o but_o you_o profess_v to_o translate_v the_o greek_a and_o not_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o you_o in_o england_n condemn_v as_o papistical_a and_o *_o 147._o discover_v of_o the_o rock_n pag._n 147._o say_n it_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o though_o *_o 1556._o prefat_n in_o no._n test_n 1556._o beza_n your_o master_n pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v the_o very_o best_a and_o will_v you_o notwithstanding_o follow_v the_o say_v vulgar_a latin_a rather_o than_o the_o greek_a to_o make_v tradition_n odious_a yea_o such_o be_v your_o partiality_n one_o way_n and_o inconstancy_n a_o other_o way_n that_o for_o your_o heretical_a purpose_n you_o be_v content_a to_o follow_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n though_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o greek_a &_o again_o a_o other_o time_n you_o will_v not_o follow_v it_o though_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o greek_a most_o exact_o as_o in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v where_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n have_v nothing_o of_o tradition_n but_o quid_fw-la decernitis_fw-la as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a you_o translate_v why_o be_v you_o burden_v with_o tradition_n 20._o col._n 2_o 20._o 9_o so_o that_o a_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v you_o frame_v your_o translation_n to_o bolster_v your_o error_n &_o heresy_n without_o all_o respect_n of_o follow_a sincere_o either_o the_o greek_a or_o the_o latin_n but_o for_o the_o latin_a no_o marvel_v the_o greek_a at_o the_o least_o why_o do_v you_o not_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v it_o the_o greek_a that_o induce_v you_o to_o say_v ordinance_n for_o tradition_n tradition_n for_o decree_n ordinance_n for_o iustification_n elder_a for_o priest_n grave_n for_o hell_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d image_n for_o idol_n tel_fw-mi we_o before_o god_n and_o in_o your_o conscience_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o you_o will_v exact_o follow_v the_o greek_a nay_o tell_v we_o true_o and_o shame_v the_o devil_n whether_o the_o greek_a word_n do_v not_o sound_a and_o signify_v most_o proper_o that_o which_o you_o of_o purpose_n will_v not_o translate_v for_o disaduantage_v your_o heresy_n and_o first_o let_v we_o see_v concern_v the_o question_n of_o image_n chap._n iii_o heretical_a translation_n against_o sacred_a image_n 1_o i_o beseech_v you_o what_o be_v the_o next_o and_o ready_a and_o most_o proper_a english_a of_o idolum_fw-la idololatra_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d idoloratria_fw-la be_v it_o not_o idol_n idolater_n idolatry_n be_v not_o these_o plain_a english_a word_n and_o well_o know_v in_o our_o language_n why_o seek_v you_o further_o for_o other_o term_n and_o word_n if_o you_o have_v mean_v faithful_o what_o need_v that_o circumstance_n of_o three_o word_n for_o one_o worshipper_n of_o image_n 3._o bib._n 1577._o eph._n 5._o col._n 3._o and_o worship_v of_o image_n whether_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o more_o natural_a &_o convenient_a speech_n either_o in_o our_o english_a tongue_n or_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o say_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v covetousness_n be_v idolatry_n and_o consequent_o the_o covetous_a man_n be_v a_o idolater_n or_o as_o you_o translate_v covetousness_n be_v worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o covetous_a man_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n image_n the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o translation_n a_o covetous_a man_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n 2_o we_o say_v common_o in_o english_a such_o a_o scotfree_a man_n make_v his_o money_n his_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o like_a manner_n of_o some_o who_o belly_n be_v their_o god_n phil._n 3._o &_o general_o every_o creature_n be_v our_o idol_n when_o we_o esteem_v it_o so_o exceed_o that_o we_o make_v it_o our_o god_n but_o who_o ever_o hear_v in_o english_a that_o our_o money_n or_o belly_n be_v our_o image_n and_o that_o by_o esteem_v of_o they_o to_o much_o we_o become_v worshipper_n of_o imange_n among_o yourselves_o be_v there_o not_o some_o even_o of_o your_o superintendent_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v that_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o their_o money_n and_o belly_n by_o covetousness_n &_o belly_n cheer_n yet_o can_v we_o not_o call_v you_o therefore_o in_o any_o true_a sense_n worshipper_n of_o image_n neither_o will_v you_o abide_v it_o you_o see_v then_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o idol_n and_o image_n idolatry_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o even_o so_o great_a difference_n be_v there_o betwixt_o s._n paul_n word_n and_o your_o translation_n 3._o will_v you_o see_v more_o yet_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o the_o english_a bible_n print_v the_o year_n 1562_o you_o read_v thus_o 6._o 2_o cor._n 6._o how_o agree_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o image_n can_v we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o satan_n cogitation_n herein_o that_o it_o be_v translate_v of_o purpose_n to_o delude_v the_o simple_a people_n and_o to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v against_o sacred_a image_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v then_o in_o pluck_v down_o in_o england_n when_o this_o your_o translation_n be_v first_o publish_v
be_v translate_v a_o image_n as_o tyrannus_n a_o king_n which_o be_v very_o true_a both_o be_v absurd_a &_o here_o he_o cit_v many_o author_n and_o dictionary_n idle_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o prove_v that_o idolum_fw-la may_v signify_v the_o same_o that_o image_n 15_o but_o i_o beseech_v you_o sir_n if_o the_o dictionary_n tell_v you_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v by_o the_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n signify_v a_o image_n which_o no_o man_n deni_v do_v they_o tell_v you_o also_o that_o you_o may_v common_o and_o ordinary_o translate_v it_o so_o as_o the_o common_a usual_a signification_n thereof_o or_o do_v they_o tell_v you_o that_o image_n and_o idol_n be_v so_o all_o one_o that_o wheresoever_o you_o find_v this_o word_n image_n you_o may_v true_o call_v it_o idol_n for_o these_o be_v the_o point_n that_o you_o shall_v defend_v in_o your_o answer_n for_o a_o example_n do_v they_o teach_v you_o to_o translate_v in_o these_o place_n thus_o imaginem_fw-la rom._n 8._o imagini_fw-la 1_o cor._n 15._o imaginem_fw-la god_n have_v predestinate_v we_o to_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o idol_n of_o his_o son_n and_o again_o as_o we_o have_v bear_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o earthly_a adam_n so_o let_v we_o bear_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o heavenly_a christ_n and_o again_o we_o be_v transform_v into_o the_o same_o idol_n even_o as_o of_o our_o lord_n spirit_n 10._o 2_o cor._n 3._o hebr._n 10._o and_o again_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v not_o the_o very_a idol_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o again_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n 4._o col._n 1._o 2_o cor._n 4._o be_v this_o i_o pray_v you_o a_o true_a translation_n yea_o say_v you_o according_a to_o the_o property_n of_o the_o word_n but_o because_o the_o name_n of_o idol_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n for_o the_o great_a dishonour_n do_v to_o god_n in_o worship_v of_o image_n be_v become_v odious_a no_o christian_a man_n will_v say_v so_o 16_o first_o note_n how_o foolish_o and_o unaduised_o he_o speak_v here_o because_o he_o will_v confound_v image_n and_o idol_n &_o make_v they_o false_o to_o signify_v one_o thing_n when_o he_o say_v the_o name_n of_o idol_n be_v become_v odious_a in_o the_o english_a tongue_n because_o of_o worship_v of_o image_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v the_o dishonour_n do_v to_o god_n in_o worship_v idol_n make_v the_o name_n of_o idol_n odious_a as_o in_o his_o own_o example_n of_o tyrant_n and_o king_n he_o mean_v to_o tell_v we_o that_o tyrant_n sometime_o be_v a_o usual_a name_n for_o every_o king_n and_o because_o certain_a such_o tyrant_n abuse_v their_o power_n therefore_o the_o name_n of_o tyrant_n become_v odious_a for_o he_o will_v not_o say_v i_o trow_n that_o for_o the_o fault_n of_o king_n the_o name_n of_o tyrant_n become_v odious_a likewise_o the_o roman_n take_v away_o the_o name_n of_o manlius_n for_o the_o crime_n of_o one_o manlius_n not_o for_o the_o crime_n of_o john_n at_o nokes_n or_o of_o any_o other_o name_n the_o name_n of_o judas_n be_v so_o odious_a that_o man_n now_o common_o be_v not_o so_o call_v why_o so_o because_o he_o that_o betray_v christ_n be_v call_v judas_n not_o because_o he_o be_v also_o iscariote_n the_o very_a name_n of_o minister_n be_v odious_a and_o contemptible_a why_o because_o minister_n be_v so_o lewd_a wicked_a &_o unlearned_a not_o because_o some_o priest_n be_v naught_o even_o so_o the_o name_n of_o idol_n grew_a to_o be_v odious_a because_o of_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n not_o because_o of_o holy_a image_n for_o if_o the_o reverence_n do_v by_o christian_n to_o holy_a image_n be_v evil_a as_o it_o be_v not_o it_o shall_v in_o this_o case_n have_v make_v the_o name_n of_o image_n odious_a &_o not_o the_o name_n of_o idol_n but_o god_n be_v thank_v the_o name_n of_o image_n be_v no_o odious_a name_n among_o catholic_a christian_n but_o only_o among_o heretic_n &_o imagebreaker_n such_o as_o the_o second_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a have_v condemn_v therefore_o with_o the_o sentence_n of_o anáthema_n no_o more_o than_o the_o cross_n be_v odious_a which_o to_o all_o good_a christian_n be_v honourable_a because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n die_v on_o a_o cross_n 17_o but_o to_o omit_v this_o man_n extraordinary_a and_o unaduised_a speech_n which_o be_v to_o many_o and_o to_o tedious_a as_o when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o sentence_n howsoever_o the_o name_n idol_n be_v grow_v odious_a in_o the_o english_a tongue_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o also_o odious_a in_o the_o latin_a &_o greek_a tongue_n but_o that_o in_o latin_a and_o greek_a a_o man_n may_v say_v according_a to_o his_o fond_a opinion_n fecit_fw-la honem_fw-la ad_fw-la idolum_fw-la suum_fw-la and_o so_o in_o the_o other_o place_n where_o be_v imago_fw-la to_o omit_v these_o rash_a assertion_n i_o say_v and_o to_o return_v to_o his_o other_o word_n where_o he_o say_v that_o though_o the_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n have_v that_o signification_n yet_o no_o christian_a man_n will_v say_v that_o god_n make_v man_n according_a to_o his_o idol_n no_o more_o than_o a_o good_a subject_n will_v call_v his_o lawful_a prince_n a_o tyrant_n do_v he_o not_o here_o tell_v we_o that_o which_o we_o will_v have_v to_o wit_n that_o we_o may_v not_o speak_v or_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n but_o according_a to_o the_o common_a usual_a and_o accustom_a signification_n thereof_o as_o we_o may_v not_o translate_v phalaris_n tyrannus_fw-la phalaris_n the_o king_n as_o sometime_o tyrannus_fw-la do_v signify_v and_o in_o ancient_a author_n do_v signify_v but_o phalaris_n the_o tyrant_n as_o now_o this_o word_n tyrannus_fw-la be_v common_o take_v &_o understand_v even_o so_o we_o may_v not_o now_o translate_v my_o child_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n as_o the_o word_n may_v and_o do_v sometime_o signify_v according_a to_o the_o original_a property_n thereof_o 5._o ab_fw-la idolis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o io._n 5._o but_o we_o must_v translate_v keep_v yourselves_o from_o idol_n according_a to_o the_o common_a use_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n in_o vulgar_a speech_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n where_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v so_o notorious_o &_o usual_o peculiar_a to_o idol_n and_o not_o unto_o image_n that_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n which_o know_v right_o well_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n themselves_o be_v grecian_n do_v pronounce_v anáthema_n to_o all_o such_o as_o interpret_v those_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o concern_v idol_n of_o image_n or_o against_o sacred_a image_n as_o now_o these_o caluinist_n do_v not_o only_o in_o their_o commentary_n upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o even_o in_o their_o translation_n of_o the_o text_n 18_o this_o then_o be_v so_o that_o word_n must_v be_v translate_v as_o their_o common_a use_n and_o signification_n require_v 35._o loco_fw-la citato_fw-la foe_n 35._o if_o you_o ask_v your_o old_a question_n what_o great_a crime_n of_o corruption_n be_v commit_v in_o translate_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n the_o greek_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o have_v answer_v yourself_o that_o in_o so_o translate_n idol_n &_o image_n be_v make_v to_o signify_v one_o thing_n which_o may_v not_o be_v do_v no_o more_o than_o tyrant_n and_o king_n can_v be_v make_v to_o signify_v all_o one_o and_o how_o can_v you_o say_v then_o that_o this_o be_v no_o more_o absurdity_n then_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o greek_a word_n to_o use_v a_o latin_a of_o the_o same_o signification_n be_v you_o not_o here_o contrary_a to_o yourself_o be_v idol_n and_o image_n tyrant_n and_o king_n of_o one_o signification_n say_v you_o not_o that_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n idol_n be_v grow_v to_o a_o other_o signification_n than_o image_n as_o tyrant_n be_v grow_v to_o a_o other_o signification_n than_o king_n your_o false_a translation_n therefore_o that_o in_o so_o many_o place_n make_v idol_n and_o image_n all_o one_o not_o only_o force_v the_o word_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o disgrace_v the_o sentence_n thereby_o as_o ephes_n 5._o &_o col._n 3_o be_v they_o not_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n very_o corrupt_a image_n eph._n 5._o a_o covetous_a man_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o col._n 3._o covetousness_n be_v worship_v of_o image_n &_o as_o your_o own_o conscience_n must_v confess_v of_o a_o malicious_a intent_n corrupt_v to_o disgrace_v thereby_o the_o church_n holy_a image_n by_o pretence_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o pagan_n idol_n 19_o but_o of_o the_o usual_a and_o original_a signification_n of_o word_n
whereof_o you_o take_v occasion_n of_o manifold_a corruption_n we_o will_v speak_v more_o anon_o if_o first_o we_o touch_v some_o other_o your_o falsification_n against_o holy_a image_n as_o where_o you_o affectate_v to_o thrust_v the_o word_n image_n into_o the_o text_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a as_o in_o that_o notorious_a example_n 2._o par._n 36._o bib._n 1562._o carve_a image_n that_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n 22._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subaud_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d num._n c._n 22._o again_o ro._n 11._o to_o the_o image_n of_o baal_n and_o act._n 19_o the_o image_n that_o come_v down_o from_o jupiter_n where_o you_o be_v not_o content_a to_o understand_v image_n rather_o than_o idol_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o also_o to_o thrust_v it_o into_o the_o text_n be_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a as_o you_o know_v very_o well_o 20_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o falsification_n be_v that_o which_o be_v creep_v as_o a_o leprosy_n through_o out_o all_o your_o bible_n translate_n sculptile_a and_o conflatile_a grave_a image_n melt_a image_n namely_o in_o the_o first_o commandment_n where_o you_o know_v in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v idol_n &_o in_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d such_o a_o word_n as_o signify_v only_o a_o grave_a thing_n not_o include_v this_o word_n image_n and_o you_o know_v that_o god_n command_v to_o make_v the_o image_n of_o cherubin_n and_o of_o ox_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o of_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n in_o the_o desert_n and_o therefore_o your_o wisdom_n may_v have_v consider_v that_o he_o forbid_v not_o all_o grave_a image_n idol_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o 1._o commandment_n concern_v false_a god_n and_o grave_a idol_n but_o such_o as_o the_o gentile_n make_v and_o worship_v as_o god_n and_o therefore_o non_fw-la facies_fw-la tibi_fw-la sculptile_fw-la concur_v with_o those_o word_n that_o go_v before_o thou_o shall_v have_v none_o other_o god_n but_o i_o for_o so_o to_o have_v a_o image_n as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o god_n be_v to_o make_v it_o more_o than_o a_o image_n and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v a_o idol_n as_o be_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n than_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o this_o commandment_n otherwise_o when_o the_o cross_n stand_v many_o year_n upon_o the_o table_n in_o the_o queen_n chapel_n chappel_n the_o cross_n in_o the_o q._n chappel_n be_v it_o against_o this_o commandment_n or_o be_v it_o idolatry_n in_o the_o queen_n majesty_n &_o her_o counsellor_n that_o appoint_v it_o there_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o your_o church_n or_o do_v the_o lutheran_n your_o pew-fellow_n at_o this_o day_n commit_v idolatry_n against_o this_o commandment_n that_o have_v in_o their_o church_n the_o crucifix_n and_o the_o holy_a image_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n church_n image_n in_o the_o lutheran_n church_n and_o of_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n or_o if_o the_o whole_a story_n of_o the_o gospel_n concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v draw_v in_o picture_n and_o image_n in_o your_o church_n as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o of_o we_o be_v it_o trow_o you_o against_o this_o commandment_n fie_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o shall_v thus_o with_o intolerable_a impudency_n and_o deceit_n abuse_v and_o bewitch_n the_o ignorant_a people_n against_o your_o own_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n for_o wot_n you_o not_o that_o god_n many_o time_n express_o forbid_v the_o jew_n both_o marriage_n and_o other_o conversation_n with_o the_o gentile_n lest_o they_o may_v fall_v to_o worship_v their_o idol_n as_o solomon_n do_v 35._o 3_o reg._n 11._o ps_n 105._o v._n 35._o &_o as_o the_o psalm_n report_v of_o they_o this_o then_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o commandment_n neither_o to_o make_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n nor_o any_o other_o like_a unto_o they_o and_o to_o that_o end_n as_o do_v jeroboam_fw-la in_o dan_n and_o bethel_n translation_n hebr._fw-la teraphim_n marsebah_n temunah_n maschith_n pesel_n tselamim_n tabaith_n hamanim_fw-la saemel_fw-la massecah_n nesachim_n gillulim_n miphletse_v gr._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o image_n and_o image_n in_o their_o translation_n 21_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o plain_a as_o nothing_o more_o in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o your_o itch_a humour_n of_o deceit_n and_o falsehood_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v translate_v still_o image_n image_n when_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n have_v diverse_a other_o word_n and_o very_o seldom_o that_o which_o answer_v to_o image_n for_o when_o it_o be_v image_n in_o the_o latin_a or_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n text_n your_o translation_n be_v not_o reprehend_v for_o we_o also_o translate_v sometime_o image_n when_o the_o text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n requite_v it_o and_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v image_n which_o the_o pagan_n adore_v for_o their_o god_n &_o we_o know_v that_o some_o idol_n be_v image_n but_o not_o all_o image_n idol_n but_o when_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v they_o by_o so_o many_o name_n rather_o than_o image_n because_o they_o be_v not_o only_a image_n but_o make_v idol_n why_o do_v your_o translation_n like_o cuckoo_n bird_n sound_v continual_o image_n image_n more_o than_o idol_n or_o other_o word_n equivalent_a to_o idol_n which_o be_v there_o mean_v 22_o two_o place_n only_o we_o will_v at_o this_o time_n ask_v you_o the_o reason_n of_o first_o why_o you_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n that_o answer_v to_o statue_n image_n so_o often_o as_o you_o do_v whereas_o this_o word_n in_o the_o say_a tongue_n be_v take_v also_o in_o the_o better_a part_n as_o when_o lacob_n set_v up_o a_o stone_n and_o erect_v it_o for_o a_o *_o 〈◊〉_d matsebah_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d title_n pour_v oil_n upon_o it_o and_o the_o prophet_n say_v our_o lord_n altar_n shall_v be_v in_o argypt_n and_o his_o *_o 22_o gen._n 28._o v._n 22_o title_n beside_o it_o 19_o esa_n 19_o v._n 19_o so_o that_o the_o word_n do_v signify_v general_o a_o sign_n erect_v of_o good_a or_o evil_a and_o therefore_o may_v very_o well_o if_o it_o please_v you_o have_v some_o other_o english_a then_o image_n unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o jacob_n also_o set_v up_o a_o image_n &_o our_o lord_n image_n shall_v be_v in_o egypt_n which_o you_o will_v not_o say_v though_o you_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n than_o in_o other_o place_n 1579._o of_o the_o year_n 1579._o 23_o second_o we_o demand_v why_o your_o very_a last_n english_a bible_n have_v esa_n 30_o 22_o for_o two_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d pesilim_n massechoth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v in_o latin_a sculptilia_fw-la and_o conflatilia_fw-la twice_o image_n image_n neither_o word_n being_n hebrew_n for_o a_o image_n no_o more_o than_o if_o a_o man_n will_v ask_v what_o be_v latin_a for_o a_o image_n &_o you_o will_v tell_v he_o sculptile_a whereupon_o he_o see_v a_o fair_a paint_a image_n in_o a_o table_n may_v happy_o say_v ecce_fw-la egregium_fw-la sculptile_fw-la which_o every_o boy_n in_o the_o grammar_n school_n will_v laugh_v at_o which_o therefore_o we_o tell_v you_o because_o we_o perceive_v your_o translation_n en_fw-fr devour_v and_o as_o it_o be_v affectat_fw-la 1579._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o year_n 1579._o to_o make_v sculptile_a and_o image_n all_o one_o which_o be_v most_o evident_o false_a and_o to_o your_o great_a confusion_n appear_v abac._n 2._o v._o 13._o where_o for_o these_o word_n quid_fw-la prodest_fw-la sculptile_fw-la quia_fw-la sculpsit_fw-la illud_fw-la fictor_fw-la suus_fw-la conflatile_a &_o imaginem_fw-la falsam_fw-la which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n your_o late_a english_a translation_n have_v what_o profit_v the_o image_n for_o the_o maker_n thereof_o have_v make_v it_o a_o image_n and_o a_o teacher_n of_o lie_n 24_o i_o will_v every_o common_a reader_n be_v able_a to_o discern_v your_o falsehood_n in_o this_o place_n first_o you_o make_v sculpere_fw-la sculptile_fw-la no_o more_o then_o to_o make_v a_o image_n which_o be_v absurd_a you_o know_v because_o the_o painter_n or_o embroderer_n make_v a_o image_n can_v not_o be_v say_v sculpere_fw-la sculptile_fw-la may_v teach_v you_o that_o the_o hebrew_n have_v in_o it_o no_o signification_n of_o image_n no_o more_o than_o sculpere_fw-la can_v signify_v to_o make_v a_o image_n and_o therefore_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a precise_o for_o the_o most_o part_n express_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o a_o thing_n grave_v 〈◊〉_d sculptile_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o yet_o mean_v always_o by_o these_o word_n a_o grave_a idol_n to_o which_o signification_n they_o be_v appropriate_v by_o use_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o simulacrum_fw-la idolum_fw-la conflatile_a and_o sometime_o imago_fw-la in_o which_o sense_n of_o
signify_v i_o doll_n if_o you_o also_o do_v repeat_v image_n so_o often_o although_o the_o translation_n be_v not_o precise_a yet_o it_o be_v in_o some_o part_n tolerable_a because_o the_o sense_n be_v so_o but_o when_o you_o do_v it_o to_o bring_v all_o holy_a image_n into_o contempt_n even_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n crucify_v you_o may_v just_o be_v control_v for_o false_a and_o heretical_a translator_n 25_o as_o in_o this_o very_a place_n which_o be_v a_o other_o fall_v hod_a like_a to_o the_o other_o conflatile_a you_o translate_v image_n 2._o abac._n 2._o as_o you_o do_v sculptile_a and_o so_o here_o again_o in_o abacuk_n as_o before_o in_o esay_n be_v note_v for_o two_o distinct_a word_n each_o signify_v a_o other_o diverse_a thing_n from_o image_n you_o translate_v image_n image_n three_o for_o imaginem_fw-la falsam_fw-la a_o false_a image_n you_o translate_v a_o other_o thing_n without_o any_o necessary_a pretence_n either_o of_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a avoid_v here_o the_o name_n of_o image_n because_o this_o place_n tell_v you_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v against_o false_a image_n or_o as_o the_o greek_a have_v false_a fantasy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o you_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n such_o image_n as_o teach_v lie_n represent_v false_a god_n which_o be_v not_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v idolum_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la 19_o 1_o cor._n 8._o act._n 19_o and_o non_fw-la sunt_fw-la dij_fw-la qui_fw-la manibus_fw-la fiunt_fw-la which_o distinction_n of_o false_a and_o true_a image_n you_o will_v not_o have_v because_o you_o condemn_v all_o image_n even_o holy_a and_o sacred_a also_o and_o therefore_o you_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o speak_v herein_o according_a to_o your_o own_o fancy_n 26_o wherein_o you_o proceed_v so_o far_o that_o when_o daniel_n say_v to_o the_o king_n 4._o dan._n 14._o v._n 4._o i_o worship_v not_o idol_n make_v with_o hand_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o make_v he_o say_v thus_o i_o worship_v not_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n 1562.1577_o bib._n 1562.1577_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n idol_n altogether_o as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o make_v with_o hand_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v not_o the_o ark_n the_o propitiatory_a no_o nor_o the_o holy_a across_o itself_o that_o our_o saviour_n shed_v his_o blood_n upon_o as_o before_o you_o add_v to_o the_o text_n so_o here_o you_o diminish_v &_o take_v from_o it_o at_o your_o pleasure_n 27_o but_o concern_v the_o word_n image_n which_o you_o make_v to_o be_v the_o english_a of_o all_o the_o latin_a hebrew_n and_o greek_a word_n be_v they_o never_o so_o many_o and_o so_o distinct_a i_o beseech_v you_o what_o reason_n have_v you_o to_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d image_n sap._n 15._o v._n 13_o do_v the_o greek_a word_n so_o signify_v do_v not_o the_o sentence_n follow_a tell_v you_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v translate_v grave_a idol_n for_o thus_o it_o say_v they_o judge_v all_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o nation_n to_o be_v go_n lo_o your_o image_n or_o rather_o lo_o the_o true_a name_n of_o the_o pagan_n god_n which_o it_o please_v you_o to_o call_v image_n image_n 28_o but_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n you_o may_v and_o it_o will_v have_v well_o becom_v you_o in_o translate_n or_o expound_v the_o foresay_a word_n to_o have_v follow_v s._n hierom_n the_o great_a famous_a translator_n and_o interpreter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o comment_fw-fr in_o abac._n 2._o who_o tell_v you_o two_o sense_n of_o the_o foresay_a word_n the_o one_o literal_a of_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o other_o mystical_a of_o heresy_n and_o error_n sculptile_a say_v he_o &_o conflatile_a i_o take_v to_o be_v perverse_a opinion_n which_o be_v adore_v of_o the_o author_n that_o make_v they_o see_v arius_n that_o grave_v to_o himself_o this_o idol_n that_o christ_n be_v only_o a_o creature_n &_o adore_v that_o which_o he_o have_v grave_v behold_v eunomius_n how_o he_o moult_v and_o cast_v a_o false_a image_n and_o bow_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v melt_v suppose_v he_o have_v exemplify_v of_o the_o two_o condemn_a heretic_n jovinian_a and_o vigilantius_n also_o have_v he_o not_o touch_v your_o idol_n that_o be_v the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n which_o you_o at_o this_o day_n adore_v 29_o these_o only_a i_o mean_v heresy_n &_o heretic_n be_v the_o idol_n and_o idolater_n by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n judgement_n which_o have_v be_v among_o christian_n since_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o gentile_n cease_v according_a to_o the_o prophet_n 13._o zach._n 13._o therefore_o s._n hierom_n say_v again_o if_o thou_o see_v a_o man_n that_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n citato_fw-la loco_fw-la citato_fw-la but_o when_o the_o falsehood_n of_o his_o opinion_n be_v once_o show_v persever_v still_o in_o that_o he_o begin_v thou_o may_v apt_o say_v sperat_fw-la in_o figmento_fw-la svo_fw-la 11._o osee_n 11._o and_o he_o make_v dumb_a or_o deaf_a idol_n and_o again_o all_o heretic_n have_v their_o god_n &_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v forge_v they_o adore_v the_o same_o as_o sculptile_v and_o conflatile_a 12._o osee_n 12._o that_o be_v as_o a_o grave_a and_o melt_a idol_n and_o again_o he_o say_v well_o i_o have_v find_v unto_o myself_o a_o idol_n for_o all_o the_o forgery_n of_o heretic_n be_v as_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n neither_o do_v they_o much_o differ_v in_o impiety_n though_o in_o name_n they_o seem_v to_o differ_v amos._n in_o 5._o amos._n and_o again_o whatsoever_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n be_v speak_v against_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v thou_o refer_v all_o this_o unto_o they_o which_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n worship_n idol_n and_o forge_v to_o themselves_o perverse_a opinion_n carry_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o their_o king_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o image_n of_o their_o idol_n for_o they_o worship_v not_o a_o idol_n but_o for_o variety_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o adore_v diverse_a go_n and_o he_o put_v in_o very_a well_o which_o you_o make_v to_o yourselves_o for_o they_o receive_v they_o not_o of_o god_n but_o forge_v they_o of_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o of_o the_o idol_n of_o samaria_n he_o say_v amos._n in_o 8._o amos._n we_o always_o understand_v samaria_n &_o the_o idol_n of_o samaria_n in_o the_o person_n of_o heretic_n the_o same_o prophet_n say_v woe_n be_v to_o they_o that_o despise_v zion_n 6._o c._n 6._o and_o tru_v in_o the_o mount_n of_o samaria_n for_o heretic_n despise_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o trust_v in_o the_o falsehood_n of_o their_o opinion_n erect_v themselves_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o say_v when_o they_o have_v divide_v the_o people_n by_o schism_n we_o have_v no_o part_n in_o david_n nor_o inheritance_n in_o the_o son_n of_o isay_n 30_o thus_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o the_o adversary_n false_o translate_v against_o the_o holy_a image_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o saint_n to_o make_v we_o idolater_n do_v in_o deed_n concern_v their_o idol_n and_o condemn_v they_o as_o idolater_n which_o forge_v new_a opinion_n to_o themselves_o such_o as_o the_o ancient_a father_n know_v not_o and_o adore_v they_o and_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n so_o far_o &_o so_o vehement_o that_o they_o prefer_v it_o before_o the_o approve_a judgement_n of_o all_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o holy_a doctor_n and_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o same_o corrupt_v the_o holy_a scripture_n at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o make_v they_o speak_v according_a to_o there_o fancy_n as_o we_o have_v partly_o show_v and_o now_o be_v to_o declare_v further_o chap._n four_o the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o word_n turn_v into_o their_o original_a and_o profane_a signification_n 1_o we_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o of_o the_o double_a signification_n of_o word_n the_o one_o according_a to_o the_o original_a property_n the_o other_o according_a to_o the_o usual_a take_v thereof_o in_o all_o vulgar_a speech_n and_o writing_n these_o word_n as_o by_o the_o way_n we_o show_v before_o upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o adversary_n grant_v be_v to_o be_v translate_v in_o their_o vulgar_a and_o usual_a signification_n matter_n chap._n 3._o nu_fw-la 17.18_o see_v also_o m._n whitaker_n pag._n 209._o &_o the_o 6_o chap._n of_o this_o book_n nu_fw-la 6.7.8_o &_o nu_fw-la 13._o etc._n etc._n much_o more_o of_o this_o matter_n not_o as_o they_o signify_v by_o their_o original_a property_n as_o for_o example_n mayor_n in_o the_o original_a signification_n be_v great_a but_o when_o we_o say_v the_o mayor_n of_o london_n now_o it_o be_v take_v and_o sound_v in_o every_o man_n ear_n for_o such_o a_o officer_n and_o no_o man_n will_v say_v the_o great_a of_o
augustine_n who_o in_o one_o brief_a sentence_n distinguish_v priest_n propre_o so_o call_v in_o the_o church_n and_o priest_n as_o it_o be_v a_o common_a name_n to_o all_o christian_n lib._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la cap._n 10._o this_o name_n then_o of_o priest_n &_o priesthood_n propre_o so_o call_v as_o s._n augustine_n faith_n which_o be_v a_o order_n distinct_a from_o the_o laity_n &_o vulgar_a people_n ordain_v to_o offer_n christ_n in_o a_o unbloudy_a manner_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n for_o we_o to_o preach_v and_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n &_o to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o people_n they_o whole_o suppress_v in_o their_o translation_n and_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v they_o presbyteros_fw-la there_o they_o never_o translate_v priest_n but_o elder_n and_o that_o they_o do_v observe_v so_o due_o and_o so_o wary_o and_o with_o so_o full_a and_o general_a consent_n in_o all_o their_o english_a bibles_n as_o the_o puritan_n do_v plain_o confess_v 722._o see_v the_o puritan_n reply_n pag._n 159._o and_o whitgift_n defence_n against_o the_o puritan_n pag._n 722._o &_o m._n whitgift_n deni_v it_o not_o that_o a_o man_n will_v wonder_n to_o see_v how_o careful_a they_o be_v that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o once_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o any_o such_o priest_n in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 4_o as_o for_o example_n in_o their_o translation_n when_o there_o fall_v a_o question_n about_o circumcision_n they_o determine_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n shall_v go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n presbyteros_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d presbyteros_fw-la about_o this_o question_n act._n 15._o and_o again_o they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n the_o the_o late_a bible_n read_v church_n congregation_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n again_o the_o apostle_n &_o elder_n come_v together_o to_o reason_n of_o this_o matter_n again_o then_o please_v it_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o whole_a congregation_n to_o send_v etc._n etc._n again_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o brethren_n send_v great_v etc._n etc._n again_o they_o deliver_v they_o the_o decree_n for_o to_o keep_v that_o be_v ordain_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n 16._o act._n 16._o if_o in_o all_o these_o place_n they_o have_v translate_v priest_n as_o in_o deed_n they_o shall_v have_v do_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a word_n it_o have_v then_o disaduantage_v they_o this_o much_o that_o man_n will_v have_v think_v both_o the_o dignity_n of_o priest_n to_o be_v great_a &_o also_o their_o authority_n in_o counsel_n as_o be_v here_o join_v with_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v great_o reverence_v &_o obey_v to_o keep_v the_o people_n from_o all_o such_o holy_a and_o reverend_a cogitation_n of_o priest_n they_o put_v elder_n a_o name_n wherewith_o our_o holy_a christian_a forefather_n ear_n be_v never_o acquaint_v in_o that_o sense_n 5_o but_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o we_o have_v hear_v often_o &_o of_o old_a time_n of_o make_v of_o priest_n and_o of_o late_a year_n also_o of_o make_v minister_n but_o do_v you_o ever_o hear_v in_o all_o england_n of_o make_v elder_n yet_o by_o these_o man_n translation_n it_o have_v be_v in_o england_n a_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n this_o thirty_o year_n but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o this_o make_n of_o elder_n have_v not_o all_o this_o while_n be_v practise_v &_o know_v no_o not_o among_o themselves_o in_o any_o of_o their_o church_n within_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n to_z titus_n they_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v thus_o 1._o tit._n 1._o for_o this_o cause_n leave_v i_o thou_o in_o creta_n that_o thou_o shall_v ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n presbyteros_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d presbyteros_fw-la etc._n etc._n again_o of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n when_o they_o have_v ordain_v elder_n by_o election_n in_o every_o 1562._o every_o bib._n a_o 1562._o congregation_n act._n 14._o if_o they_o have_v say_v plain_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a &_o as_o our_o forefather_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v and_o the_o truth_n be_v titus_n be_v leave_v in_o creta_n to_o ordain_v priest_n in_o every_o city_n and_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n make_v priest_n in_o every_o church_n then_o the_o people_n will_v have_v understand_v they_o they_o know_v such_o speech_n of_o old_a and_o it_o have_v be_v their_o joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o hear_v it_o specify_v in_o holy_a scripture_n now_o they_o be_v tell_v another_o thing_n in_o such_o newness_n of_o speech_n and_o word_n of_o elder_n to_o be_v make_v in_o every_o city_n &_o congregation_n and_o yet_o not_o one_o city_n nor_o congregation_n to_o have_v any_o elder_n in_o all_o england_n that_o we_o know_v not_o what_o be_v profane_a novelty_n of_o word_n 6._o 1_o tim._n 6._o which_o the_o apostle_n will_v to_o be_v avoid_v if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o exceed_a profane_a novelty_n 6_o that_o it_o be_v novelty_n to_o all_o english_a christian_a ear_n it_o be_v evident_a and_o it_o be_v also_o profane_a because_o they_o do_v so_o english_a the_o greek_a word_n of_o ordain_v for_o of_o the_o word_n presbyter_n we_o will_v speak_v more_o anon_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v translate_v demosthenes_n 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 14._o or_o the_o law_n of_o athens_n concern_v their_o choose_n of_o magistrate_n which_o be_v by_o give_v voice_n with_o lift_v up_o their_o hand_n so_o do_v they_o force_v this_o word_n here_o to_o induce_v the_o people_n election_n &_o yet_o in_o their_o church_n in_o england_n the_o people_n elect_v not_o minister_n but_o their_o bishop_n whereas_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o ordain_v to_o the_o people_n and_o whatsoever_o force_n the_o word_n have_v it_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o pertain_v not_o to_o the_o people_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tit._n 1._o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o place_n to_o titus_n it_o be_v another_o word_n which_o can_v be_v force_v further_o then_o to_o ordain_v &_o appoint_v and_o they_o may_v know_v if_o malice_n and_o heresy_n will_v suffer_v they_o to_o see_v and_o confess_v it_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n and_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n have_v draw_v this_o &_o the_o like_a word_n from_o their_o profane_a &_o common_a signification_n to_o a_o more_o peculiar_a and_o ecclesiastical_a speech_n as_o episcopus_fw-la a_o overseer_n in_o tully_n be_v a_o bishop_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n 7_o and_o concern_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o s._n hierom_n tell_v they_o in_o c._n 58._o esai_n that_o it_o signify_v clericorum_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la that_o be_v geve_v of_o holy_a order_n which_o be_v do_v not_o only_o by_o prayer_n of_o the_o voice_n 〈◊〉_d greg._n nazian_n in_o titul_n ser._n 1.4.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ignat._n ep_v 10._o say_v of_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o by_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n unto_o timothee_n manus_fw-la citò_fw-la nemini_fw-la imposueris_fw-la impose_v or_o put_v hand_n quick_o on_o no_o man_n that_o be_v be_v not_o hasty_a or_o easy_a to_o give_v holy_a order_n where_o these_o great_a etymologiste_n that_o so_o strain_v the_o original_a nature_n of_o this_o word_n to_o profane_v stretch_v forth_o the_o hand_n in_o election_n may_v learn_v a_o other_o ecclesiastical_a etymology_n thereof_o as_o proper_a and_o as_o well_o deduce_v of_o the_o word_n as_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n put_v forth_o the_o hand_n to_o give_v order_n &_o so_o they_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v imposition_n of_o hand_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o tim._n 1_o and_o consequent_o for_o ordain_v elder_n by_o election_n they_o shall_v have_v say_v ordain_v or_o make_v priest_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o else_o where_o s._n paul_n 1_o tim._n 5._o and_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 6._o and_o 13._o do_v speak_v in_o the_o ordain_v of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n and_o of_o ss_z paul_n and_o barnabas_n 8_o but_o they_o be_v so_o profane_a and_o secular_a that_o they_o translate_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o it_o have_v the_o old_a profane_a signification_n still_o &_o be_v indifferent_a to_o signify_v the_o ancient_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o senator_n of_o rome_n the_o elder_n of_o lacedemonia_fw-la and_o the_o christian_a clergy_n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d paul_n send_v to_o ephesus_n and_o call_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n act._n 20_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v such_o as_o have_v their_o
sort_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o 3_o reg._n 2._o both_o of_o good_a and_o of_o bad_a for_o all_o go_v then_o into_o hell_n but_o some_o into_o a_o place_n there_o of_o rest_n other_o into_o other_o place_n there_o of_o torment_n and_o therefore_o s._n hierom_n say_v speak_v of_o hell_n according_a to_o the_o old_a testament_n hell_n be_v a_o place_n wherein_o soul_n be_v include_v 13._o in_o c._n 13_o osee_n aug._n in_o psal_n 85._o v._n 13._o either_o in_o rest_n or_o in_o pain_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o desert_n 13_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v also_o often_o say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o such_o &_o such_o be_v gather_v or_o lay_v to_o their_o father_n damn_a the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o a_o other_o hell_n beside_o that_o of_o the_o damn_a though_o they_o be_v bury_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o die_v not_o in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n in_o that_o sense_n samuel_n be_v raise_v up_o to_o speak_v with_o saul_n say_v to_o morrow_o thou_o and_o thy_o son_n shall_v be_v with_o i_o that_o be_v dead_a and_o in_o hell_n though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o place_n or_o state_n there_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o such_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o have_v the_o word_n inferi_n or_o infernus_fw-la correspondent_a both_o to_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n ought_v to_o be_v and_o may_v be_v most_o convenient_o translate_v by_o the_o word_n hel._n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v inferiori_fw-la ab_fw-la inferno_fw-la inferiori_fw-la thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o lower_n hell_n ps_n 85._o v._n 13._o that_o be_v as_o s._n augustine_n expound_v it_o thou_o have_v preserve_v i_o from_o mortal_a sin_n that_o will_v have_v bring_v i_o into_o the_o lower_n hell_n which_o be_v for_o the_o damn_a which_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o like_a when_o they_o translate_v grave_a see_v how_o miserable_o it_o sound_v 1579._o bib._n 1579._o thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o low_a grave_n which_o they_o will_v never_o say_v for_o very_a shame_n but_o that_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o say_v in_o any_o place_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n never_o so_o plain_a that_o any_o soul_n be_v deliver_v or_o return_v from_o hell_n lest_o thereof_o it_o may_v follow_v by_o and_o by_o that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o such_o a_o hel._n 14_o and_o that_o this_o be_v their_o fear_n it_o be_v evident_a because_o in_o all_o other_o place_n where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a from_o whence_o be_v no_o return_n there_o they_o translate_v the_o very_a same_o word_n hell_n and_o not_o grave_a as_o for_o example_n the_o way_n of_o life_n be_v on_o high_a to_o the_o prudent_a 15.24_o proverb_n 15.24_o to_o avoid_v from_o hell_n beneath_o lo_o here_o that_o be_v translate_v hell_n beneath_o which_o before_o be_v translate_v the_o low_a grave_n and_o again_o hell_n and_o destruction_n be_v before_o the_o lord_n how_o much_o more_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o when_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v mention_n of_o delivery_n of_o a_o soul_n from_o hell_n than_o thus_o they_o translate_v inferi_fw-la bib._n 1579._o de_fw-fr manu_fw-la inferi_fw-la god_n shall_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n for_o he_o will_v receive_v i_o can_v you_o tell_v what_o they_o will_v say_v do_v god_n deliver_v they_o from_o the_o grave_n or_o from_o temporal_a death_n who_o he_o receive_v to_o his_o mercy_n or_o have_v the_o grave_a any_o power_n over_o the_o soul_n again_o when_o they_o say_v 48._o ps_n 89_o 48._o what_o man_n live_v and_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n shall_v he_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_n 15_o if_o they_o take_v grave_a proper_o where_o man_n body_n be_v bury_v it_o be_v not_o true_a either_o that_o every_o soul_n yea_o or_o every_o body_n be_v bury_v in_o a_o grave_n but_o if_o in_o all_o such_o place_n they_o will_v say_v they_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o signify_v death_n &_o that_o to_o go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n and_o to_o die_v be_v all_o one_o we_o ask_v they_o why_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o call_v it_o go_v down_o to_o hell_n not_o go_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n here_o they_o must_v needs_o open_v the_o mystery_n of_o antichrist_n work_v in_o their_o translation_n and_o say_v that_o so_o they_o shall_v make_v hell_n a_o common_a place_n to_o all_o that_o depart_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o they_o will_v not_o no_o not_o in_o the_o most_o important_a place_n of_o our_o belief_n concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n &_o triumph_v over_o the_o same_o yea_o therefore_o of_o purpose_n they_o will_v not_o only_o for_o to_o defeat_v that_o part_n of_o our_o christian_a creed_n 16_o as_o when_o the_o prophet_n first_o osee_n 13._o &_o afterward_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 15._o in_o the_o greek_a say_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ero_n mors_fw-la tua_fw-la o_o mors_fw-la morsus_fw-la tuus_fw-la ero_fw-la inferne_fw-la vby_a mors_fw-la stimulus_fw-la tuus_fw-la vby_a infer_v victoria_fw-la tua_fw-la o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o sting_n o_o hel._n where_o be_v o_o death_n thy_o sting_n where_o be_v o_o hell_n thy_o victory_n they_o translate_v in_o both_o place_n 1579._o bibl._n 1579._o o_o grave_n in_o stead_n of_o o_o hel._n what_o else_o can_v be_v their_o meaning_n hereby_o but_o to_o draw_v the_o reader_n from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o conquer_a the_o same_o and_o bring_v out_o the_o father_n and_o just_a man_n triumphant_o from_o thence_o into_o heaven_n which_o sense_n have_v all_o way_n be_v the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o holy_a doctor_n osee_n see_v s._n hier._n comment_n in_o 13._o osee_n special_o upon_o this_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o what_o a_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v this_o and_o out_o of_o all_o tune_n to_o make_v our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n as_o though_o he_o have_v triumph_v over_o the_o grave_n and_o not_o over_o hell_n or_o over_o the_o grave_n that_o be_v over_o death_n and_o so_o the_o prophet_n shall_v say_v death_n twice_o and_o hell_n not_o at_o all_o 17_o why_o my_o master_n you_o that_o be_v so_o wonderful_a precise_a translatour_n admit_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v not_o into_o hell_n beneath_o as_o you_o say_v yet_o i_o think_v you_o will_v grant_v that_o he_o triumph_v over_o hell_n &_o be_v conqueror_n of_o the_o same_o why_o then_o do_v it_o not_o please_v you_o to_o suffer_v the_o prophet_n to_o say_v so_o at_o the_o least_o rather_o than_o that_o he_o have_v conquest_n only_o of_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n you_o abuse_v your_o ignorant_a reader_n very_o impudent_o and_o your_o own_o self_n very_o damnable_o not_o only_o in_o this_o but_o in_o that_o you_o make_v grave_a and_o death_n all_o one_o and_o so_o where_o the_o holy_a scripture_n often_o join_v together_o death_n &_o hell_n as_o thing_n different_a and_o distinct_a you_o make_v they_o speak_v but_o one_o thing_n twice_o idle_o and_o superfluous_o 18_o but_o will_v you_o know_v that_o you_o shall_v not_o confound_v they_o but_o that_o mors_fw-la &_o infernus_fw-la which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o all_o tongue_n be_v distinct_a hear_v what_o s._n hierom_n say_v or_o if_o you_o will_v not_o hear_v because_o you_o be_v of_o they_o which_o have_v stop_v their_o ear_n let_v the_o indifferent_a christian_a reader_n harken_v to_o this_o holy_a doctor_n and_o great_a interpreter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o his_o singular_a knowledge_n in_o all_o the_o learned_a tongue_n upon_o the_o foresay_a place_n of_o the_o prophet_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o overcome_v of_o death_n he_o add_v 13._o hierom._n in_o osee_n ca._n 13._o between_o death_n and_o hell_n this_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o death_n be_v that_o whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n hell_n be_v the_o place_n where_o soul_n be_v include_v either_o in_o rest_n or_o else_o in_o pain_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o desert_n and_o that_o death_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o hell_n be_v another_o the_o psalmist_n also_o declare_v say_v there_o be_v not_o in_o death_n that_o be_v mindful_a of_o thou_o 6._o psal_n 6._o but_o in_o hell_n who_o shall_v confess_v to_o thou_o and_o in_o a_o other_o
place_n let_v death_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o let_v they_o go_v down_o into_o hell_n alive_a thus_o far_o s._n hierom._n 19_o by_o which_o difference_n of_o death_n and_o hell_n whereof_o we_o must_v often_o advertise_v the_o reader_n be_v mean_v two_o thing_n death_n and_o the_o go_v down_o of_o the_o soul_n into_o some_o receptacle_n of_o hell_n in_o that_o state_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n at_o what_o time_n the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v this_o phrase_n so_o often_o now_o these_o impudent_a translator_n in_o all_o these_o place_n translate_v it_o grave_n 1579._o bib._n 1579._o of_o purpose_n to_o confound_v it_o and_o death_n together_o &_o to_o make_v it_o but_o one_o thing_n which_o s._n hierom_n show_v to_o be_v different_a in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n that_o we_o have_v declare_v 20_o but_o alas_o be_v it_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o hebrew_n infernus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d infernus_fw-la greek_n or_o latin_a that_o force_v they_o so_o much_o to_o english_a it_o grave_n rather_o than_o hell_n we_o appeal_v to_o all_o hebrician_n grecian_n and_o latinist_n in_o the_o world_n first_o if_o a_o man_n will_v ask_v what_o be_v hebrew_n or_o greek_a or_o latin_a for_o hell_n whether_o they_o will_v not_o answer_n these_o three_o word_n as_o the_o very_a proper_a word_n to_o signify_v it_o even_o as_o panis_n signify_v bread_n second_o if_o a_o man_n will_v ask_v what_o be_v hebrew_n sepulchrum_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sepulchrum_n or_o greek_a or_o latin_a for_o a_o grave_n whether_o they_o will_v answer_n these_o word_n and_o not_o three_o other_o which_o they_o know_v be_v as_o proper_a word_n for_o grave_n as_o lac_fw-la be_v for_o milk_n 21_o yea_o note_n &_o consider_v diligent_o what_o we_o will_v say_v let_v they_o show_v i_o out_o of_o all_o the_o bible_n one_o place_n where_o it_o be_v certain_a &_o agree_v among_o all_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v grave_a let_v they_o show_v i_o in_o any_o one_o such_o place_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v any_o of_o those_o former_a three_o word_n for_o grave_n as_o when_o abraham_n buy_v a_o place_n of_o burial_n whether_o he_o buy_v infernum_fw-la 49._o gen._n c._n 49._o or_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n be_v bury_v in_o the_o monument_n or_o sepulcher_n of_o their_o father_n whether_o it_o say_v in_o infernit_fw-la patrum_fw-la suorum_fw-la so_o that_o not_o only_o divine_n by_o this_o observation_n but_o grammatian_o also_o and_o child_n may_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o proper_a and_o child_n may_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o proper_a and_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o say_a word_n be_v in_o english_a hell_n and_o not_o grave_a 55._o annot._n in_o act._n 2_o 25.27_o &_o in_o 1_o cor._n 15_o 55._o 22_o and_o therefore_o beza_n do_v strange_o abuse_v his_o reader_n more_o than_o in_o one_o place_n say_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n do_v proper_o signify_v grave_a be_v deduce_v of_o a_o verb_n that_o signify_v to_o crave_v or_o ask_v because_o it_o crave_v always_o new_a corpse_n as_o though_o the_o grave_n crave_v more_o than_o hell_n do_v 15.16_o bib._n 1579._o prover._n 1_o 12.3_o 15.16_o or_o wallow_v more_o or_o be_v more_o hardly_o satisfy_v and_o fill_v then_o hell_n for_o in_o all_o such_o place_n they_o translate_v grave_a and_o in_o one_o such_o place_n they_o say_v 30._o prou._n 27_o 30._o the_o grave_n and_o destruction_n can_v never_o be_v full_a whereas_o themselves_o a_o little_a before_o translate_v the_o very_a same_o word_n 11._o cap._n 15_o 11._o hell_n and_o destruction_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v have_v please_v they_o to_o have_v say_v also_o hell_n and_o destruction_n can_v never_o be_v full_a 5._o bib._n 1562._o 1577._o proverb_n 1._o 1_o pet._n 5._o as_o their_o pew-followes_a doe_n in_o their_o translation_n &_o again_o we_o shall_v swallow_v they_o up_o like_o hel._n the_o devil_n we_o read_v go_v about_o continual_o like_o a_o roar_a lion_n seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v who_o be_v call_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n abaddon_n 11._o apoc._n 9_o 11._o that_o be_v destruction_n and_o so_o very_o apt_o hell_n and_o destruction_n be_v join_v together_o and_o be_v true_o say_v never_o to_o be_v fill_v what_o madness_n and_o impudency_n be_v it_o then_o for_o beza_n to_o write_v thus_o allege_v beza_n before_o allege_v who_o be_v ignorant_a that_o by_o the_o hebrew_n word_n rather_o be_v signify_v agrave_n for_o that_o it_o seem_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o crave_v always_o new_a carcase_n 23_o and_o again_o concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o deliver_v the_o father_n from_o thence_o it_o be_v marvel_v say_v beza_n 24._o annot._n in_o 2_o act._n v._o 24._o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v in_o this_o error_n whereas_o with_o the_o hebrews_n the_o word_n sheol_n signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o graus_n before_o he_o plead_v upon_o the_o etymology_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n now_o also_o he_o plead_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o hebrews_n themselves_o if_o he_o be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v very_o impudent_a and_o obstinate_a we_o will_v easy_o mistrust_v his_o skill_n in_o the_o hebrew_n say_v that_o among_o the_o hebrews_n the_o word_n signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o grave_n aliud_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la 24_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v what_o be_v those_o hebrews_n do_v not_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n best_o tell_v we_o the_o use_n of_o this_o word_n do_v not_o themselves_o translate_v it_o hell_n very_o often_o do_v not_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la always_o if_o any_o hebrew_n in_o the_o world_n be_v ask_v how_o he_o will_v turn_v these_o word_n into_o hebrew_n simile_n estis_fw-la sepulchris_fw-la de_fw-la albatis_fw-la you_o be_v like_a to_o white_v grave_n and_o sepulchrum_n eius_fw-la apud_fw-la vos_fw-la est_fw-la his_o grave_n be_v among_o you_o will_v any_o hebrew_n i_o say_v translate_v it_o by_o this_o hebrew_n word_n which_o beza_n say_v among_o the_o hebrews_n signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o grave_n sheol_n sheolim_n sheol_n ask_v your_o hebrew_n reader_n in_o this_o case_n and_o see_v what_o they_o will_v answer_n 25_o what_o be_v those_o hebrews_n then_o church_n the_o protestant_n in_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n follow_v the_o late_a jew_n rather_o than_o the_o ancient_a father_n &_o apostolical_a church_n that_o beza_n speak_v of_o forsooth_o certain_a jew_n or_o late_a rabbin_n which_o as_o they_o do_v false_o interpret_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o other_o point_n of_o our_o belief_n as_o against_o his_o incarnation_n death_n &_o resurrection_n so_o do_v they_o also_o false_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o his_o descend_v into_o hell_n which_o those_o jewish_a rabbin_n deny_v because_o they_o look_v for_o a_o other_o messiah_n that_o shall_v not_o die_v at_o all_o and_o consequent_o shall_v not_o after_o his_o death_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n and_o deliver_v the_o father_n expect_v his_o come_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v and_o therefore_o those_o jewish_a rabbin_n hold_v as_o the_o heretic_n do_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n incarnation_n &_o these_o rabbin_n be_v they_o which_o also_o pervert_v the_o hebrew_n word_n to_o the_o signification_n of_o grave_n in_o such_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o speak_v either_o of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n or_o of_o the_o father_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n even_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o they_o pervert_v other_o hebrew_n word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o namely_o alma_fw-la to_o signify_v a_o young_a woman_n 7._o esa_n 7._o not_o a_o virgin_n against_o our_o saviour_n birth_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n marie_n 26_o and_o if_o these_o late_a rabbin_n be_v the_o hebrews_n that_o beza_n mean_v and_o which_o these_o gay_a english_a translatour_n follow_v we_o lament_v that_o they_o join_v themselves_o with_o such_o companion_n be_v the_o swear_v enemy_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n sure_o the_o christian_a hebrues_n in_o rome_n and_o else_o where_o which_o of_o great_a rabbin_n be_v become_v zealous_a doctor_n of_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o honour_v every_o mystery_n and_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n they_o dispute_v as_o vehement_o against_o those_o other_o rabbin_n as_o we_o do_v against_o the_o heretic_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n they_o tell_v they_o that_o soul_n say_v 28._o 1_o reg._n 28._o raise_v i_o up_o samuël_n and_o that_o the_o woman_n say_v i_o see_v god_n ascend_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n &_o a_o old_a man_n be_v ascend_v or_o come_v up_o and_o that_o samuël_n say_v why_o have_v thou_o disquiet_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v
and_o to_o his_o be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o earth_n three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n and_o therefore_o s._n hierom_n say_v jonae_fw-la comment_fw-fr in_o 2._o jonae_fw-la this_o belly_n of_o hell_n according_a to_o the_o story_n be_v the_o whale_n belly_n but_o it_o may_v much_o better_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o under_o the_o name_n of_o david_n 87._o psal_n 15._o in_o inferno_fw-la psal_n 87._o sing_v in_o the_o psalm_n thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n who_o be_v in_o hell_n alive_a and_o free_a among_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o do_v interpret_v of_o his_o soul_n in_o hel._n for_o as_o the_o hart_n be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o body_n so_o be_v hell_n say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o earth_n 35_o thus_o then_o presuppose_v as_o we_o must_v that_o jonas_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o principal_a sense_n be_v not_o of_o the_o whale_n belly_n but_o of_o that_o hell_n whither_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v and_o from_o whence_o he_o deliver_v the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n himself_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n as_o their_o king_n and_o general_a capitaine_fw-fr before_o they_o and_o open_v the_o way_n of_o heaven_n unto_o they_o 2.13_o mich._n 2.13_o as_o be_v signify_v in_o a_o other_o prophet_n and_o be_v the_o first_o that_o enter_v heaven_n 36_o against_o all_o which_o truth_n and_o every_o point_n thereof_o these_o translatour_n be_v so_o watcheful_a and_o wary_a initianit_fw-la heb._n 10_o 20._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d initianit_fw-la that_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v christ_n begin_v and_o dedicate_v unto_o we_o the_o way_n into_o heaven_n they_o say_v in_o their_o english_a translation_n with_o full_a consent_n nothing_o else_o but_o he_o prepare_v why_o be_v they_o false_a here_o than_o their_o master_n caluin_n beza_n illyricus_n who_o read_v dedicavit_fw-la be_v there_o nothing_o in_o the_o greek_a word_n but_o bare_a preparation_n where_o be_v these_o etymologiste_n now_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o can_v strain_v and_o wring_v other_o word_n to_o the_o uttermost_a advantage_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o here_o be_v content_a for_o the_o like_a advantage_n to_o dissemble_v the_o force_n of_o this_o word_n which_o by_o all_o use_n and_o property_n signify_v to_o make_v new_a to_o begin_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o first_o author_n to_o dedicate_v joan._n aug._n tract_n 48._o in_o joan._n as_o s._n augustine_n may_v have_v teach_v they_o and_o their_o lexicon_n and_o the_o scripture_n in_o many_o place_n this_o translation_n no_o doubt_n be_v not_o do_v sincere_o and_o indifferent_o of_o they_o but_o for_o their_o own_o deceitful_a purpose_n as_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n when_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o preparation_n only_o they_o know_v right_a well_o that_o he_o use_v the_o usual_a word_n to_o prepare_v as_o 〈◊〉_d heb._n 11_o 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o have_v prepare_v they_o a_o city_n and_o wheresoever_o be_v signify_v preparation_n only_o let_v they_o bring_v we_o one_o example_n where_o it_o be_v express_v by_o the_o other_o greek_a word_n which_o now_o we_o speak_v of_o 37_o but_o it_o be_v of_o more_o importance_n which_o follow_v and_o appartein_v altogether_o to_o this_o controversy_n hebr._n 1577._o of_o the_o year_n 1577._o 5._o v._o 7._o your_o translation_n be_v thus_o in_o the_o very_a english_a bible_n that_o now_o be_v read_v in_o your_o church_n hel._n against_o christ_n descend_v into_o hel._n which_o in_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n offer_v up_o prayer_n with_o strong_a cry_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v he_o from_o death_n &_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o which_o he_o fear_v be_v the_o greek_a here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o that_o which_o he_o fear_v you_o know_v that_o no_o grammar_n nor_o lexicon_n do_v allow_v you_o this_o translation_n but_o either_o thus_o for_o reverence_n or_o as_o one_o of_o your_o own_o english_a bibles_n have_v it_o because_o of_o his_o reverence_n 38_o how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o in_o your_o late_a english_a bible_n you_o change_v your_o former_a translation_n from_o better_a to_o worse_o exmetn_n exmetn_n or_o who_o teach_v you_o so_o to_o translate_v it_o forsooth_o the_o heretic_n beza_n who_o translation_n you_o follow_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o your_o late_a bible_n though_o here_o in_o sense_n rather_o than_o in_o word_n and_o who_o teach_v beza_n he_o say_v caluin_n be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o find_v out_o this_o interpretation_n and_o why_o sure_o for_o defence_n of_o no_o less_o blasphemy_n than_o this_o that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v horrible_o afraid_a of_o damnation_n 16._o calu._n catech._n &_o institut_fw-la fi._n 2._o c._n 16._o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a sorrow_n and_o torment_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o that_o otherwise_o he_o descend_v not_o let_v the_o reader_n note_v these_o new_a teacher_n upon_o this_o place_n and_o judge_v to_o what_o wicked_a end_n this_o translation_n tend_v 39_o a_o wondered_a thing_n when_o all_o antiquity_n with_o a_o general_a &_o full_a consent_n have_v in_o that_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n read_v thus_o that_o christ_n be_v hear_v of_o his_o father_n for_o his_o reverence_n accord_v as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o say_v in_o the_o raise_n of_o lazarus_n 42._o io._n 11_o 42._o and_o signify_v in_o his_o long_a prayer_n io._n 17_o how_o a_o blasphemous_a and_o presumptuous_a heretic_n shall_v be_v so_o malapert_a thus_o to_o alter_v it_o that_o he_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o which_o he_o fear_v that_o be_v that_o he_o be_v deliver_v from_o damnation_n and_o the_o eternal_a pain_n of_o hell_n which_o he_o be_v sore_o afraid_a of_o to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o which_o blasphemy_n beza_n will_v seem_v to_o force_v the_o greek_a thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d first_o say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o here_o signify_v reverence_n or_o piety_n but_o fear_v and_o such_o a_o fear_n which_o he_o call_v pavorem_fw-la &_o consternationem_fw-la animi_fw-la that_o be_v dreadfulnes_n and_o astonishment_n of_o mind_n and_o other_o like_a word_n to_o insinuate_v a_o exceed_a horror_n and_o fear_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o confutation_n whereof_o we_o may_v easy_o bring_v the_o common_a use_n of_o this_o greek_a word_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o signify_v not_o every_o fear_n but_o that_o religious_a fear_n which_o be_v in_o the_o best_a man_n join_v with_o godliness_n holiness_n and_o devotion_n as_o when_o in_o the_o act_n they_o that_o bury_v s._n steven_n 〈◊〉_d act_n 8._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v call_v viri_fw-la timorati_fw-la devout_a man_n such_o as_o fear_v god_n 40_o but_o we_o need_v not_o go_v far_o for_o beza_n will_v help_v we_o himself_o who_o tell_v we_o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o very_a same_o his_o word_n be_v these_o 25._o annot._n in_o luc._n 2._o v._n 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d significat_fw-la non_fw-la quemuis_fw-la timorem_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la reverentia_fw-la potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la cum_fw-la animi_fw-la trepidatione_fw-la coniunctum_fw-la latini_fw-la religionem_fw-la vocant_fw-la that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v every_o fear_n but_o that_o which_o be_v join_v with_o reverence_n rather_o than_o with_o astonishment_n of_o mind_n the_o latin_n do_v call_v it_o religion_n or_o religious_a fear_n if_o this_o be_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o beza_n himself_o confess_v why_o do_v he_o not_o so_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o foresay_a place_n to_o the_o hebrews_n why_o forsake_v he_o the_o old_a approve_a latin_a translation_n and_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o ancient_a interpreter_n and_o translate_v it_o that_o fear_n or_o astonishment_n of_o mind_n which_o he_o say_v the_o word_n do_v not_o signify_v 41_o and_o mark_v that_o in_o his_o foresay_a annotation_n upon_o s._n luke_n he_o tell_v not_o a_o peculiar_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n in_o that_o place_n as_o though_o in_o some_o other_o place_n it_o may_v have_v a_o other_o signification_n but_o he_o tell_v general_o what_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v that_o be_v that_o it_o signify_v not_o every_o fear_n but_o a_o fear_n join_v with_o reverence_n and_o he_o say_v true_o and_o they_o shall_v hardly_o give_v a_o instance_n where_o it_o signify_v that_o fear_n of_o astonishment_n which_o both_o he_o and_o they_o translate_v in_o the_o foresay_a place_n of_o s._n paul_n such_o a_o force_n have_v heresy_n to_o
greek_a word_n so_o evident_o in_o this_o sense_n 2._o annot._n in_o 3_o mat._n v._o 2._o that_o beza_n say_v he_o do_v it_o for_o his_o verse_n sake_n because_o a_o other_o word_n will_v not_o stand_v so_o well_o in_o the_o verse_n but_o the_o reader_n i_o trust_v see_v the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o these_o greek_a word_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o greek_a father_n themselves_o most_o ancient_a and_o approve_a 7_o three_o that_o the_o ancient_a latin_a interpreter_n do_v common_o so_o translate_v these_o word_n through_o out_o the_o new_a testament_n agere_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la that_o need_v no_o proof_n neither_o will_v i_o stand_v upon_o it_o though_o it_o be_v great_a authority_n than_o they_o have_v any_o to_o the_o contrary_a because_o the_o adversary_n know_v it_o and_o mislike_v it_o and_o for_o that_o and_o other_o like_a point_n it_o be_v belike_o that_o one_o of_o they_o say_v it_o be_v the_o worst_a translation_n of_o all_o 1556._o discou_n of_o sand._n rock_n pag._n 147._o prae_fw-la fat_n in_o no._n test_n a_o 1556._o whereas_o beza_n his_o master_n say_v it_o be_v the_o best_a of_o al._n so_o well_o they_o agree_v in_o judgement_n the_o master_n and_o the_o man_n 8_o i_o come_v to_o the_o four_o proof_n which_o be_v that_o all_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o the_o glorious_a doctor_n thereof_o have_v always_o read_v as_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a interpreter_n translate_v these_o word_n and_o expound_v the_o same_o of_o penance_n and_o do_v penance_n to_o name_v one_o or_o two_o for_o a_o example_n 108._o ep._n 108._o s._n augustine_n place_n be_v very_o notable_a which_o therefore_o i_o set_v down_o and_o may_v be_v translate_v thus_o 2._o agunt_fw-la homines_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la act._n 2._o man_n do_v penance_n before_o baptism_n of_o their_o former_a sin_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v also_o baptize_v peter_n say_v thus_o do_v you_o penance_n and_o let_v every_o one_o be_v baptise_a man_n also_o do_v penance_n if_o after_o baptism_n they_o do_v so_o sin_n that_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o reconcile_v again_o as_o in_o all_o church_n they_o do_v which_o be_v call_v appellantur_fw-la sicut_fw-la agunt_fw-la qui_fw-la poenitentes_fw-la appellantur_fw-la poenitentes_fw-la for_o of_o such_o penance_n spake_v s_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 12_o 21._o saying_n that_o i_o lament_v not_o many_o of_o they_o which_o before_o have_v sin_v and_o have_v not_o do_v penance_n for_o their_o uncleanness_n we_o have_v also_o in_o the_o act_n 18._o act._n 8_o 18._o that_o simon_n magus_n be_v baptize_v be_v admonish_v by_o peter_n to_o doe_n penance_n for_o his_o grevous_a sin_n poenitentiam_fw-la ut_fw-la agerat_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la there_o be_v also_o in_o manner_n a_o daily_a penance_n of_o the_o good_a and_o humble_a believer_n in_o which_o we_o knock_v our_o breast_n say_v forgive_v we_o our_o dette_n for_o these_o venial_a and_o daily_a offence_n fa_v and_o alm_n and_o prayer_n be_v watchful_o use_v poenitontiam_fw-la quotidianan_n agere_fw-la poenitontiam_fw-la and_o humble_v our_o soul_n we_o cease_v not_o after_o asort_v to_o do_v daily_a penance_n 9_o in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o painful_a or_o penitential_a work_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v penance_n again_o that_o there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o the_o same_o one_o before_o baptism_n a_o other_o after_o baptism_n for_o great_a offence_n great_a and_o long_o the_o other_o daily_o for_o common_a and_o little_a venial_a fault_n which_o the_o best_a man_n also_o commit_v in_o this_o frail_a nature_n again_o that_o the_o two_o former_a be_v signify_v &_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o three_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o he_o allege_v where_o we_o see_v that_o he_o read_v altogether_o as_o the_o vulgar_a interpreter_n translate_v and_o expound_v all_o three_o place_n of_o penance_n for_o sin_n &_o so_o approve_v that_o signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n yea_o in_o say_v that_o for_o venial_a sin_n we_o knock_v our_o breast_n fast_o give_v alm_n and_o pray_v and_o so_o cease_v not_o quotidianam_fw-la agere_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la what_o do_v he_o mean_v but_o daily_a penance_n and_o satisfaction_n read_v also_o s._n cyprian_n beside_o other_o place_n epist_n 52._o num_fw-la 6._o where_o his_o citation_n of_o scripture_n be_v according_a to_o the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n and_o his_o exposition_n according_a of_o do_v penance_n and_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n commit_v but_o i_o need_v not_o proceed_v further_o in_o allege_v either_o s._n cyprian_n or_o other_o ancient_a father_n for_o this_o purpose_n because_o the_o adversary_n grant_v it_o howbeit_o in_o what_o term_n they_o grant_v it_o and_o how_o malapert_o they_o accuse_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n at_o once_o for_o the_o same_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o here_o to_o put_v down_o their_o word_n 10_o whereas_o the_o reverend_a godly_a and_o learned_a father_n edmund_n campion_n have_v object_v in_o his_o book_n the_o protestant_n accusation_n of_o s._n cyprian_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o penance_n the_o good_a man_n that_o answer_v for_o both_o university_n say_v thus_o to_o that_o point_n camp_n whitak_n pa._n 97._o cont_n ration_n edm._n camp_n but_o whereas_o magdeburgenses_n lutheran_n writer_n of_o that_o city_n complain_v that_o he_o deprave_a the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n they_o do_v not_o feign_v or_o forge_v this_o crime_n against_o he_o but_o utter_a or_o disclose_v it_o poenitentiae_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la for_o all_o man_n understand_v that_o it_o be_v to_o true_a neither_o be_v this_o cyprian_n fault_n alone_a imprudenter_fw-la de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la imprudenter_fw-la that_o he_o write_v of_o repentance_n many_o thing_n incommodious_o and_o unwise_o but_o all_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n almost_o at_o that_o time_n be_v in_o the_o same_o error_n for_o while_o thy_o desire_v to_o restrain_v man_n manner_n by_o severe_a law_n poenitentiae_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la they_o make_v the_o great_a part_n of_o repentance_n to_o consist_v in_o certain_a external_a discipline_n of_o life_n which_o themselves_o prescribe_v in_o that_o they_o punish_v vice_n severe_o they_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v withal_o but_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o think_v to_o pay_v the_o pain_n due_a for_o sin_n and_o to_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n and_o to_o procure_v to_o themselves_o assure_v impunity_n remission_n and_o justice_n therein_o they_o derogate_a not_o a_o little_a from_o christ_n death_n attribute_v to_o much_o to_o their_o own_o invention_n &_o final_o deprave_a repentance_n thus_o far_o the_o answerer_n 11_o mark_v how_o he_o accuse_v the_o father_n in_o general_a of_o no_o less_o crime_n then_o take_v away_o from_o christ_n the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n attribute_v it_o to_o their_o own_o penance_n and_o discipline_n which_o if_o they_o do_v i_o marvel_v he_o shall_v call_v they_o in_o this_o very_a place_n where_o he_o begin_v to_o charge_v they_o with_o such_o a_o crime_n sanctissimos_fw-la patres_fw-la most_o holy_a father_n the_o truth_n be_v he_o may_v as_o well_o charge_v s._n paul_n with_o the_o same_o when_o he_o say_v 2._o rom._n 2._o we_o shall_v be_v the_o heir_n of_o god_n and_o coheire_n with_o christ_n yet_o so_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o that_o we_o may_v also_o be_v glorify_v with_o he_o s._n paul_n say_v our_o suffering_n also_o with_o christ_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n master_n whitaker_n say_v it_o be_v a_o derogation_n to_o christ_n suffering_n christ_n fast_v for_o we_o therefore_o our_o fast_n make_v nothing_o to_o salvation_n he_o pray_v for_o we_o be_v scourge_v and_o die_v for_o we_o therefore_o our_o prayer_n scourge_v and_o imprisonment_n yea_o &_o death_n itself_o for_o his_o sake_n make_v nothing_o to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o if_o we_o shall_v think_v it_o do_v we_o derogate_v from_o christ_n passion_n alas_o be_v this_o the_o divinity_n of_o england_n now_o a_o day_n to_o make_v the_o simple_a believe_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n by_o their_o severe_a life_n and_o voluntary_a penance_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n do_v therein_o derogate_v from_o christ_n merit_n and_o passion_n 12_o i_o may_v not_o stand_v upon_o this_o point_n neither_o need_n i._o the_o principal_a matter_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o adversary_n confession_n that_o the_o holy_a doctor_n speak_v write_v and_o think_v of_o penance_n and_o do_v penance_n as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o same_o term_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a and_o with_o catholic_n it_o be_v always_o a_o good_a argument_n and_o we_o desire_v no_o better_a proof_n than_o this_o the_o protestant_n grant_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o our_o opinion_n and_o they_o say_v it_o be_v their_o error_n for_o the_o first_o
unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o a_o man_n will_v think_v be_v plain_a enough_o to_o prove_v that_o baptism_n in_o water_n be_v necessary_a interpret_n i_o say_v this_o scripture_n of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n thus_o of_o water_n 5._o beza_n in_o 4.10_o v._o 10._o &_o in_o tit._n 3._o v._n 5._o that_o be_v the_o spirit_n make_v water_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o in_o this_o place_n but_o the_o spirit_n allegorical_o and_o not_o material_a water_n as_o though_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v to_o nicodemus_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n i_o mean_v of_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v etc._n etc._n according_a to_o this_o most_o impudent_a exposition_n of_o plain_a scripture_n caluin_n translate_v also_o as_o impudent_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n abunde_fw-la c._n 3._o v._n 5._o per_fw-la lavacrum_fw-la regenerationis_fw-la sp._n sancti_fw-la qvod_fw-la offudit_fw-la in_o nos_fw-la abunde_fw-la make_v the_o apostle_n to_o say_v that_o god_n pour_v the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n upon_o we_o abundant_o that_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v not_o understand_v his_o meaning_n herein_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o this_o place_n that_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v water_n pour_v out_o abundant_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o material_a water_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o in_o deed_n the_o apostle_n say_v not_o that_o water_n be_v pour_v upon_o we_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n make_v water_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o one_o but_o most_o plain_o distinguish_v they_o say_v that_o god_n of_o his_o mercy_n have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renovation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n translate_v quem_fw-la effudit_fw-la as_o beza_n himself_o translate_v who_o he_o have_v pour_v upon_o we_o abundant_o see_v how_o plain_o the_o apostle_n speak_v both_o of_o the_o material_a water_n or_o wash_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o effect_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n pour_v upon_o us._n caluin_n take_v away_o water_n clean_a and_o will_v have_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n locum_fw-la comment_fw-fr in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la which_o flaccus_n illyricus_n the_o lutheran_n himself_o wonder_v at_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o bold_a and_o call_v it_o plain_a sacrilege_n against_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 6_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v here_o accuse_v the_o english_a translatour_n also_o that_o translate_v it_o thus_o by_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o shed_v on_o we_o etc._n etc._n make_v it_o indifferent_a either_o which_o fountain_n or_o which_o holy_a ghost_n he_o shed_v &c_n &c_n they_o will_v answer_n by_o &_o by_o that_o the_o greek_a also_o be_v indifferent_a but_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v they_o further_o whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v shed_v or_o rather_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n they_o must_v needs_o confess_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o water_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o translate_n which_o he_o shed_v will_v have_v it_o mean_v of_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n &_o so_o they_o agree_v just_a with_o caluins_n translation_n and_o leave_v beza_n effudit_fw-la sp._n sancti_fw-la que_fw-la effudit_fw-la who_o in_o his_o translation_n refer_v it_o only_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o do_v but_o in_o his_o commentary_n play_v the_o heretic_n as_o caluin_n do_v 7_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n i_o have_v speak_v before_o concern_v that_o part_n special_o which_o be_v satisfaction_n here_o i_o will_v only_o add_v of_o confession_n that_o to_o avoid_v this_o term_n namely_o in_o such_o a_o place_n where_o the_o reader_n may_v easy_o gather_v sacramental_a confession_n they_o translate_v thus_o exemologêsis_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereof_o confession_n be_v call_v in_o s._n cyprian_a and_o other_o father_n exemologêsis_n acknowledge_v your_o fault_n one_o to_o a_o other_o jac._n 5._o it_o be_v say_v a_o little_a before_o if_o any_o be_v disease_v let_v he_o bring_v in_o priest_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o it_o follow_v confess_v your_o fault_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o to_o make_v all_o sure_a for_o confess_v say_v acknowledge_v &_o for_o priest_n elder_n what_o mean_v they_o by_o this_o if_o this_o acknowledge_v of_o fault_n one_o to_o a_o other_o before_o death_n be_v indifferent_o to_o be_v make_v to_o all_o man_n why_o do_v they_o appoint_v in_o their_o communion-booke_n as_o it_o seem_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o sick_a person_n shall_v make_v a_o special_a confession_n to_o the_o minister_n sick_a in_o the_o order_n of_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o he_o shall_v absolve_v he_o in_o the_o very_a same_o form_n of_o absolution_n that_o catholic_a priest_n use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n again_o if_o this_o acknowledge_v of_o fault_n be_v special_o to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o minister_n or_o priest_n why_o translate_v they_o it_o not_o by_o the_o word_n confess_v and_o confession_n as_o well_o as_o by_o acknowledge_v &_o why_o be_v not_o this_o confession_n a_o sacrament_n where_o themselves_o acknowledge_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o minister_n these_o contradiction_n and_o repugnance_n of_o their_o practice_n and_o translation_n if_o they_o can_v witte_o and_o wise_o reconcile_v they_o may_v perhaps_o in_o this_o point_n satisfy_v the_o reader_n but_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v here_o of_o sacramental_a confession_n or_o no_o sincere_a translator_n shall_v not_o have_v flee_v from_o the_o proper_a and_o most_o usual_a word_n of_o confession_n or_o confess_v consonant_a both_o to_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a and_o indifferent_a to_o whatsoever_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v mean_v as_o this_o word_n acknowledge_v be_v not_o chap._n xv._o heretical_a translation_n against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n and_o for_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o votary_n 1_o against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n what_o can_v they_o do_v more_o in_o translation_n then_o in_o all_o their_o bibles_n to_o take_v away_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n altogether_o and_o for_o it_o to_o say_v elder_a and_o eldership_n whereof_o i_o treat_v more_o at_o large_a 6._o large_a chap._n 6._o in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o this_o book_n here_o i_o add_v these_o few_o observation_n that_o both_o for_o priest_n and_o deacon_n which_o be_v two_o holy_a order_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o translate_v minister_n to_o commend_v that_o new_a degree_n devise_v by_o themselves_o 31._o ecclici_fw-la c._n 7._o v._n 31._o as_o when_o they_o say_v in_o all_o their_o bible_n fear_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o honour_v his_o minister_n in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v plain_a thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o honour_v his_o priest_n as_o the_o word_n always_o signify_v and_o in_o the_o very_a next_o sentence_n themselves_o so_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d fear_v the_o lord_n and_o honour_n the_o priest_n but_o they_o will_v needs_o borrow_v one_o of_o these_o place_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o minister_n as_o also_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o where_o s._n paul_n talk_v of_o deacon_n and_o name_v they_o twice_o they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n translate_v thus_o 1577._o bib._n 1562._o and_o 1577._o likewise_o must_v the_o minister_n be_v honest_a etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o let_v the_o deacon_n be_v the_o husbad_n of_o one_o wife_n loe_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o one_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o deacon_n and_o beza_n so_o interpret_n it_o in_o both_o place_n yet_o our_o english_a translatour_n have_v allow_v the_o first_o place_n to_o their_o minister_n and_o the_o second_o to_o deacon_n and_o so_o because_o bishop_n also_o go_v before_o they_o have_v find_v we_o out_o their_o three_o order_n bishop_n minister_n &_o deacon_n alas_o poor_a soul_n that_o can_v have_v no_o place_n in_o scripture_n for_o their_o minister_n but_o by_o make_v the_o apostle_n speak_v three_o thing_n for_o two_o 2_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v call_v minister_n in_o infinite_a place_n and_o that_o by_o three_o greek_a word_n common_o but_o that_o be_v a_o large_a signification_n of_o minister_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d attribute_v to_o all_o that_o minister_n wait_v serve_v or_o attend_v to_o do_v any_o service_n ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a sacred_a or_o profane_a if_o the_o word_n be_v restrain_v to_o any_o one_o peculiar_a service_n or_o function_n as_o one_o of_o
so_o he_o forbid_v they_o the_o name_n of_o father_n &_o father_n and_o yet_o i_o trow_o they_o will_v not_o scoff_n at_o this_o name_n either_o in_o their_o own_o father_n or_o in_o themselves_o so_o call_v of_o their_o child_n though_o in_o religious_a man_n according_a to_o their_o heretical_a humour_n they_o scoff_v also_o at_o this_o name_n as_o they_o do_v at_o the_o other_o in_o doctor_n corruption_n a_o heap_n of_o corruption_n 11_o contrariwise_o as_o they_o be_v diligent_a to_o put_v some_o word_n odious_o where_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o they_o be_v as_o circumspect_a not_o to_o put_v other_o word_n and_o term_n where_o they_o shall_v in_o their_o first_o bible_n print_v again_o a_o 1562._o not_o once_o the_o name_n of_o church_n in_o the_o same_o for_o charity_n love_n for_o altar_n temple_n for_o heretic_n a_o author_n of_o sect_n &_o for_o heresy_n sect_n because_o in_o those_o beginning_n all_o these_o word_n sound_v exceed_o against_o they_o the_o church_n they_o have_v then_o forsake_v christian_a charity_n they_o have_v break_v by_o schism_n altar_n they_o dig_v down_o heresy_n &_o heretic_n they_o know_v in_o their_o conscience_n be_v like_a in_o the_o people_n ear_n to_o agree_v unto_o they_o rather_o than_o to_o the_o old_a catholic_a faith_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o again_o in_o all_o their_o bible_n indifferent_o both_o former_a &_o late_a they_o have_v rather_o say_v righteous_a then_o just_a righteousness_n then_o justice_n gift_n then_o grace_n special_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n secret_a rather_o than_o mystery_n special_o in_o matrimony_n dissension_n then_o schism_n &_o these_o word_n not_o at_o all_o priest_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n sacrament_n catholic_a hymn_n confession_n penance_n iustification_n and_o tradition_n in_o the_o good_a part_n but_o in_o steed_n thereof_o elder_n secret_a general_a praise_n acknowledge_v amendment_n of_o life_n ordinance_n instruction_n and_o which_o be_v somewhat_o worse_o carcase_n for_o soul_n and_o grave_n for_o hell_n we_o may_v say_v unto_o you_o as_o demosthenes_n say_v to_o aeschines_n 〈◊〉_d demosth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o be_v these_o word_n or_o wonder_v certain_o they_o be_v wonder_v and_o very_o wonderful_a in_o catholic_a man_n ear_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v sincere_a and_o not_o heretical_a deal_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o wise_a and_o indifferent_a reader_n of_o any_o sort_n chap._n xxii_o other_o fault_n judaical_a profane_a mere_a vanity_n folly_n &_o novelty_n 1_o now_o leave_v matter_n of_o controversy_n let_v we_o talk_v a_o little_a with_o you_o familiar_o and_o learn_v of_o you_o the_o reason_n of_o other_o point_n in_o your_o translation_n which_o to_o we_o seem_v fault_n and_o savour_v not_o of_o that_o spirit_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o christian_a catholic_a translator_n 2_o first_o you_o be_v so_o profane_a that_o you_o say_v the_o ballet_n of_o ballet_n of_o solomon_n so_o term_v that_o divine_a book_n canticum_fw-la canticorum_fw-la contain_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o church_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o ballet_n of_o love_n between_o solomon_n and_o his_o concubine_n as_o castaleo_n wanton_o translate_v it_o but_o you_o say_v more_o profane_o thus_o we_o have_v conceive_v we_o have_v bear_v in_o pain_n as_o though_o we_o shall_v have_v bring_v forth_o wind_n i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v the_o literal_a commentary_n of_o this_o your_o translation_n 18._o esa_n 26._o v._n 18._o why_o may_v you_o not_o have_v say_v we_o have_v conceive_v and_o as_o it_o be_v travail_v to_o bring_v forth_o and_o have_v bring_v forth_o the_o spirit_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o hebrew_n to_o hinder_v you_o thus_o far_o why_o will_v you_o say_v wind_n rather_o than_o spirit_n know_v that_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la in_o greek_a &_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o s._n hierom_n himself_o who_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n place_n ambr._n li._n 2._o the_o interpel_n c._n 4._o chrys_n in_o ps_n 7._o prope_fw-la finem_fw-la see_v s._n hier._n upon_o this_o place_n yet_o for_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n all_o expound_v it_o both_o according_a to_o hebrew_n &_o greek_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v first_o conceive_v in_o we_o &_o begin_v by_o feat_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o beginning_n of_o wisdom_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o the_o greek_a there_o be_v these_o goodly_a word_n famous_a in_o all_o antiquity_n through_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o o_o lord_n we_o conceive_v and_o have_v travailea_n with_o pain_n and_o have_v bring_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o thy_o salvation_n which_o thou_o have_v make_v upon_o the_o earth_n which_o do_v excellent_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o degree_n of_o a_o faithful_a man_n increase_n and_o procede_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o begin_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o his_o judgement_n &_o be_v a_o good_a fear_n though_o servile_a and_o not_o sufficient_a &_o it_o may_v be_v that_o you_o condemn_v with_o luther_n this_o servile_a fear_n as_o evil_a and_o hurtful_a mean_v also_o some_o such_o thing_n by_o your_o translation_n but_o in_o deed_n the_o place_n may_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o other_o fear_v also_o which_o have_v his_o degree_n more_o or_o less_o 3_o but_o to_o say_v we_o have_v bring_v forth_o wind_n can_v admit_v no_o such_o interpretation_n but_o even_o as_o if_o a_o mere_a jew_n shall_v translate_v or_o understand_v it_o who_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o god_n spirit_n so_o have_v you_o exclude_v the_o true_a sense_n which_o concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o not_o the_o cold_a term_n of_o wind_n and_o whatsoever_o naked_a interpretation_n thereof_o and_o it_o be_v your_o fashion_n in_o all_o such_o case_n where_o the_o rich_a sense_n be_v of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n there_o to_o translate_v wind_n as_o ps_n 147._o v._n 18._o as_o you_o number_v the_o psalm_n 4_o and_o it_o be_v not_o unlike_a to_o this_o that_o you_o will_v not_o translate_v for_o the_o angel_n honour_n that_o carry_v abacuc_n he_o set_v he_o into_o babylon_n over_o the_o lake_n by_o the_o force_n of_o his_o spirit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o thus_o through_o a_o mighty_a wind_n so_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o wind_n not_o to_o the_o angel_n power_n and_o omit_v clean_o the_o greek_a pronowne_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o which_o show_v evident_o that_o it_o be_v the_o angel_n spirit_n force_n and_o power_n 5_o again_o where_o the_o prophet_n speak_v most_o manifest_o of_o christ_n there_o you_o translate_v clean_o a_o other_o thing_n as_o esa_n 30._o v._n 20._o when_o s._n hierom_n translate_v thus_o 1579._o bib._n 1579._o and_o the_o church_n have_v always_o read_v according_o non_fw-la faciet_fw-la avolare_fw-la eat_v ultra_fw-la doctorem_fw-la tuum_fw-la &_o erunt_fw-la oculi_fw-la tui_fw-la videntes_fw-la praeceptorem_fw-la tuum_fw-la that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o our_o lord_n shall_v not_o cause_v thy_o doctor_n to_o fly_v from_o thou_o any_o more_o and_o thy_o eye_n shall_v see_v thy_o master_n which_o be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n with_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n there_o you_o translate_v thus_o thy_o rain_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o keep_v back_o but_o thy_o eye_n shall_v see_v thy_o rain_n so_o likewise_o joel_n 2._o v._o 23._o where_o the_o holy_a church_n read_v rejoice_v you_o child_n of_o zion_n in_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n because_o he_o have_v give_v you_o the_o doctor_n of_o justice_n there_o you_o translate_v the_o rain_n of_o righteousness_n 〈◊〉_d see_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v the_o hebrew_n word_n force_v you_o to_o this_o you_o know_v that_o it_o signify_v a_o teacher_n or_o master_n and_o therefore_o the_o jew_n themselves_o esa_n lyra_n in_o 30_o esa_n partly_o understand_v it_o of_o esdras_n partly_o of_o christ_n divinity_n why_o be_v you_o more_o profane_a i_o will_v not_o say_v more_o judaical_a then_o the_o jew_n themselves_o why_o may_v not_o s._n hierom_n a_o christian_a doctor_n and_o lack_v no_o skill_n in_o the_o hebrew_n as_o you_o well_o know_v satisfy_v you_o who_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o hebrew_n in_o these_o place_n be_v doctor_z master_n teacher_n who_o also_o in_o psal_n 84_o 7_o translate_v thus_o with_o blessing_n shall_v the_o doctor_n be_v array_v meaning_n christ_n where_o you_o with_o the_o late_a rabbin_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n translate_v the_o rain_n cover_v the_o pool_n what_o cold_a stuff_n be_v this_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o other_o translation_n so_o clear_o point_v to_o christ_n our_o master_n and_o doctor_n 6_o and_o again_o where_o s._n hierom_n translate_v and_o the_o church_n read_v and_o all_o the_o father_n interpret_v and_o
that_o arch_a heretic_n 8_o to_z let_v this_o pass_v toby_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la &_o the_o maccabee_n be_v they_o not_o most_o certain_o reject_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v allow_v and_o receive_v for_o canonical_a by_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o s._n james_n epistle_n be_v this_o epistle_n the_o caluinist_n be_v content_a to_o admit_v because_o *_o 47._o conc_fw-fr carth._n 3_o can_n 47._o so_o it_o please_v caluin_n those_o book_n they_o reject_v because_o so_o also_o it_o please_v he_o and_o why_o do_v it_o so_o please_v caluin_n under_o pretence_n forsooth_o that_o they_o wereonce_v doubt_v of_o and_o not_o take_v for_o canonical_a but_o be_v that_o the_o true_a cause_n in_o deed_n how_o do_v they_o then_o *_o jac._n argum._n in_o ep_v jac._n receive_v s._n james_n epistle_n as_o canonical_a have_v be_v before_o doubt_v of_o also_o yea_o as_o *_o ibid._n whitak_n p._n 10._o ibid._n they_n say_v reject_v 9_o mark_v gentle_a reader_n for_o thy_o soul_n sake_n and_o thou_o shall_v find_v that_o heresy_n and_o only_a heresy_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o deny_v these_o book_n so_o far_o that_o against_o the_o order_n and_o hierarchy_n and_o particular_a patronage_n of_o angel_n one_o of_o they_o write_v thus_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n service_n ibid._n p._n 17._o m_o whitak_n by_o these_o word_n condemn_v their_o own_o service_n book_n which_o appoint_v these_o book_n of_o toby_n &_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la to_o be_v read_v for_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o other_o do_v they_o read_v in_o their_o church_n apocryphal_a and_o superstitious_a book_n for_o holy_a scripture_n or_o be_v he_o a_o puritan_n that_o thus_o disgrace_v their_o order_n of_o daily_a service_n we_o pass_v not_o for_o that_o raphael_n of_o toby_n neither_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v those_o seven_o angel_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o this_o be_v far_o from_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o the_o same_o raphael_n record_v and_o savour_v i_o wot_n not_o what_o superstition_n against_o free_a will_v thus_o i_o little_a care_n for_o the_o place_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la neither_o will_v i_o believe_v free_a will_v though_o he_o affirm_v a_o hundred_o time_n that_o before_o man_n be_v life_n and_o death_n and_o against_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o intercession_n of_o saint_n thus_o as_o for_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n i_o do_v care_n less_o for_o it_o then_o for_o the_o other_o judas_n dream_n concern_v onias_n i_o let_v pass_v as_o a_o dream_n this_o be_v their_o reverence_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o have_v universal_o be_v reverence_v for_o canonical_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n above_o 1100_o year_n conc._n carth._n 3._o and_o particular_o of_o many_o father_n long_o before_o august_n de_fw-fr doct_n christ_n lib._n 2_o ca._n 8._o 10_o as_o for_o part_n of_o book_n do_v they_o not_o reject_v certain_a piece_n of_o daniel_n and_o of_o hester_n because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n which_o reason_n s._n augustine_n reject_v or_o because_o they_o be_v once_o doubt_v of_o by_o certain_a of_o the_o father_n by_o which_o reason_n some_o part_n of_o s._n mark_v and_o s._n luke_n gospel_n may_v now_o also_o be_v call_v in_o controversy_n special_o if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o m._n whitaker_n by_o a_o figurative_a speech_n more_o than_o insinuate_v that_o he_o can_v not_o see_v by_o what_o right_a that_o which_o once_o be_v not_o in_o credit_n 10._o pag._n 10._o shall_v by_o time_n win_v authority_n forget_v himself_o by_o &_o by_o and_o in_o the_o very_a next_o line_n admit_v s._n james_n epistle_n though_o before_o doubt_v of_o for_o canonical_a scripture_n book_n m._n whitak_n book_n unless_o they_o receive_v it_o but_o of_o their_o courtesy_n and_o so_o may_v refuse_v it_o when_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v gather_v of_o his_o word_n as_o also_o many_o other_o notorious_a absurdity_n contradiction_n and_o dumb_a blank_n which_o only_o to_o note_v be_v to_o confute_v m._n whitaker_n by_o himself_o be_v the_o answerer_n for_o both_o university_n 11_o for_o the_o second_o point_n which_o be_v not_o the_o gross_a denial_n of_o book_n but_o yet_o call_v of_o they_o in_o question_n move_v scruple_n about_o they_o &_o diminish_v their_o authority_n and_o credit_n i_o will_v go_v no_o further_o then_o to_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n 1579._o in_o the_o argument_n bib._n a_o 1579._o which_o i_o will_v not_o ask_v why_o they_o doubt_v of_o or_o rather_o think_v it_o not_o to_o be_v s._n paul_n for_o they_o will_v tell_v i_o because_o it_o be_v once_o in_o doubt_n not_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v canonical_a &_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o now_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v canonical_a but_o i_o must_v ask_v they_o and_o request_v they_o to_o make_v a_o reasonable_a answer_n why_o in_o their_o english_a bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1579_o and_o 1580_o they_o presume_v to_o leave_v out_o s._n paul_n name_n out_o of_o the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o say_a epistle_n which_o name_n be_v *_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o greek_a and_o in_o beza_n latin_a translation_n both_o which_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v see_v the_o title_n of_o the_o new_a test_n a_o 1580._o do_v not_o the_o title_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v s._n paul_n why_o seek_v they_o further_o or_o why_o do_v they_o change_v the_o title_n strike_v out_o s._n paul_n name_n if_o they_o mean_v to_o deal_v simple_o and_o sincere_o and_o what_o a_o heretical_a peevishness_n be_v this_o because_o beza_n tell_v they_o of_o one_o obscure_a greek_a copy_n that_o have_v not_o paul_n name_n and_o only_o one_o that_o they_o will_v rather_o follow_v it_o then_o all_o other_o copy_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o indifferent_a man_n of_o common_a sense_n whether_o they_o do_v it_o not_o to_o diminish_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o epistle_n 12_o i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n stand_v not_o upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o author_n but_o yet_o to_o be_v paul_n or_o not_o paul_n apostolical_a or_o not_o apostolical_a make_v great_a difference_n of_o credit_n and_o estimation_n for_o what_o make_v s._n james_n epistle_n doubt_v of_o sometime_o or_o the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o think_v to_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o those_o apostle_n this_o luther_n see_v very_o well_o when_o he_o deny_v s._n james_n epistle_n to_o be_v same_o be_v the_o apostle_n writing_n if_o title_n of_o book_n be_v of_o no_o importance_n then_o leave_v out_o matthew_n mark_v luke_n and_o john_n leave_v out_o paul_n in_o his_o other_o epistle_n also_o and_o you_o shall_v much_o pleasure_v the_o manichee_n and_o other_o old_a heretic_n and_o if_o the_o title_n make_v no_o difference_n urge_v no_o more_o the_o title_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n s._n john_n the_o divine_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o s._n johns_n the_o evangelist_n and_o you_o shall_v much_o displeasure_n some_o heretic_n now_o a_o day_n brief_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v and_o they_o know_v it_o best_o by_o their_o own_o usual_a do_n that_o it_o be_v a_o principal_a way_n to_o the_o discredit_n of_o any_o book_n to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v that_o author_n under_o who_o name_n it_o have_v be_v receive_v 13_o but_o i_o come_v to_o the_o three_o point_n of_o voluntary_a exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v when_o every_o man_n expound_v according_a to_o his_o error_n &_o heresy_n this_o need_v no_o proof_n for_o we_o see_v it_o with_o our_o eye_n look_v upon_o the_o caluinist_n and_o puritan_n at_o home_n the_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n abroad_o read_v their_o book_n write_v vehement_o one_o sect_n against_o a_o other_o be_v not_o their_o exposition_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o scripture_n as_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a as_o their_o opinion_n differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o let_v the_o example_n at_o home_n be_v their_o controversy_n about_o the_o distinction_n of_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o minister_v the_o example_n abroad_o their_o diverse_a imagination_n &_o fantasy_n upon_o these_o most_o sacred_a word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la 14_o and_o if_o you_o will_v yet_o have_v a_o further_a demonstration_n this_o one_o may_v suffice_v for_o al._n they_o reject_v counsel_n and_o father_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n interpretation_n unless_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v agreeable_a or_o no_o that_o luther_n shall_v judge_v for_o the_o lutheran_n caluin_n for_o the_o caluinist_n cartwright_n for_o the_o puritan_n and_o a_o other_o for_o the_o brethren_n of_o love_n brief_o *_o 120._o whitak_n pa._n 17._o &_o 120._o
themselves_o will_v be_v judge_n both_o of_o counsel_n and_o father_n whether_o they_o expound_v the_o scripture_n well_o or_o no_o &_o every_o youth_n among_o they_o upon_o confidence_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o knowledge_n will_v saucy_o control_v not_o only_o one_o but_o all_o the_o father_n consent_v together_o if_o it_o be_v against_o that_o which_o they_o imagine_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n 15_o whereupon_o it_o rise_v that_o one_o of_o they_o defend_v this_o as_o very_o well_o say_v of_o luther_n 101._o lb._n pag._n 101._o that_o he_o esteem_v not_o the_o worth_a of_o a_o rush_n a_o thousand_o augustine_n cyprian_n church_n against_o himself_o and_o a_o other_o very_o fine_o and_o figurative_o as_o he_o think_v against_o the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o martyr_n s._n cyprian_a affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o err_v in_o faith_n 25._o praef._n ad_fw-la 6_o thesis_n oxon_n pag._n 25._o say_v thus_o pardon_v i_o cyprian_a i_o will_v glad_o believe_v thou_o but_o that_o believe_v thou_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n this_o be_v that_o which_o s._n augustine_n say_v of_o the_o like_a man_n 20._o li._n confess_v 1._o ca._n 14._o li._n 7._o c._n 20._o dulcissimè_fw-la vanos_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la peritos_fw-la sed_fw-la perituros_fw-la nectam_fw-la disertos_fw-la in_o errore_fw-la quam_fw-la desertos_fw-la a_o veritate_fw-la and_o i_o think_v very_o that_o not_o only_o we_o but_o the_o wiser_n man_n among_o themselves_o smile_v at_o such_o eloquence_n or_o pity_v it_o say_v this_o or_o the_o like_o most_o true_o senect_n cicero_n de_fw-fr senect_n prodierunt_fw-la oratores_fw-la novi_fw-la stulti_fw-la adolescentuli_fw-la 16_o the_o 4_o point_n be_v of_o pick_v quarrel_n to_o the_o very_a original_a text_n for_o alter_v &_o change_v it_o i_o hope_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a in_o this_o watchful_a world_n of_o most_o vigilant_a catholic_n but_o what_o they_o will_v do_v if_o all_o bibles_n be_v only_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o at_o their_o commandment_n scripture_n beza_n the_o mouse_n of_o geneva_n gnaw_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n guess_v by_o this_o that_o beza_n against_o the_o evidence_n of_o all_o copy_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a in_o hís_n annot._n upon_o the_o new_a test_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1556._o think_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v more_o than_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o text_n mat._n 10_o &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luc._n 22._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 7_o the_o first_o against_o peter_n supremacy_n the_o second_o against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n blood_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n the_o three_o against_o the_o make_n of_o whatsoever_o image_n whether_o they_o be_v adore_v or_o no._n thus_o you_o see_v how_o the_o mouse_n of_o geneva_n as_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o of_o martion_n the_o mouse_n of_o pontus_n knibble_v and_o gnaw_v about_o it_o though_o he_o can_v not_o bite_v it_o of_o altogether_o 17_o he_o do_v the_o like_a in_o sundry_a place_n which_o you_o may_v see_v in_o his_o annotation_n act._n 7._o v._n 16._o where_o he_o be_v saucy_a against_o all_o copy_n greeke_n and_o latin_a to_o pronounce_v corruption_n corruption_n avouch_v and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o must_v be_v so_o and_o that_o with_o these_o word_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o luke_n add_v this_o act._n 8._o v._n 26._o but_o because_o those_o place_n concern_v no_o controversy_n i_o say_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o bit_v at_o the_o text_n and_o will_v change_v it_o according_a to_o his_o imagination_n if_o he_o may_v which_o be_v to_o proud_a a_o enterprise_n for_o beza_n and_o small_a reverence_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o to_o call_v the_o very_a text_n into_o controversy_n that_o whatsoever_o please_v not_o he_o creep_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n which_o be_v his_o common_a and_o almost_o his_o only_a conjecture_n 18_o he_o bit_v sore_o at_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luc._n 1._o v._n 78._o and_o will_v not_o translate_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o hebrew_n word_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o at_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 2._o v._n 24._o much_o more_o &_o at_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act_n 7._o v._o 14._o exceed_o but_o yet_o after_o he_o have_v say_v all_o that_o he_o can_v against_o it_o he_o conclude_v that_o he_o dare_v not_o and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o conscience_n upon_o conjecture_n to_o change_v any_o thing_n and_o therefore_o all_o this_o be_v gnaw_v only_o he_o no._n test_n a_o 1556._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d beza_n reconcile_v the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n with_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a by_o put_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a text_n so_o much_o as_o please_v he_o but_o in_o the_o 3_o of_o luke_n he_o make_v no_o conscience_n at_o all_o to_o leave_v out_o these_o word_n vers_fw-la 36_o qui_fw-la fuit_fw-la cainan_n not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o translation_n but_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o be_v join_v therewith_o say_v in_o his_o annot._fw-la non_fw-la dubitavimus_fw-la expungere_fw-la that_o be_v we_o doubt_v not_o to_o put_v it_o out_o &_o why_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o moses_n gen._n 11._o whereby_o he_o signify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n gen._n 11._o where_o this_o posterity_n of_o sem_fw-mi be_v reckon_v and_o so_o to_o maintain_v the_o hebrew_n verity_n as_o they_o call_v it_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n he_o ca●●th_v not_o what_o become_v of_o the_o greek_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o yet_o at_o other_o time_n against_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n they_o call_v the_o greek_a verity_n and_o the_o pure_a fountain_n and_o that_o text_n whereby_o all_o translation_n must_v be_v try_v 19_o but_o if_o he_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o reconcile_v both_o testament_n but_o by_o strike_v out_o in_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a all_o that_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o hebrew_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n then_o let_v he_o alter_v and_o change_v so_o many_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n as_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o be_v not_o in_o hebrew_n which_o place_n they_o know_v be_v very_o many_o &_o when_o need_n be_v they_o shall_v be_v gather_v to_o their_o hand_n let_v he_o strike_v out_o mat._n 13._o v._n 14.15_o &_o act._n 28._o v._n 26.27_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o s._n paul_n 〈◊〉_d esa_n 6_o 9.10_o gal_n 3_o 13._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cite_v out_o of_o esay_n because_o they_o be_v far_o otherwise_o in_o the_o hebrew_n strike_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatians_n these_o word_n upon_o a_o tree_n because_o in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v only_o thus_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o be_v hang_v deut._n 21_o in_o fine_a yea_o strike_v out_o of_o david_n psalm_n that_o which_o concern_v our_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n much_o near_o they_o have_v pierce_v my_o hand_n &_o my_o foot_n ps_n 21._o because_o in_o the_o hebrew_n thére_n be_v no_o such_o thing_n let_v they_o conntroule_v the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eph._n 4_o for_o say_v dedit_fw-la he_o give_v gift_n because_o it_o be_v both_o in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n psal_n 67_o accepisti_fw-la thou_o take_v gift_n and_o hebr._n 10_o for_o corpus_fw-la aptasti_fw-la let_v they_o put_v aures_fw-la perforasti_fw-la because_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o hebrew_n psal_n 40._o to_o be_v short_a if_o all_o must_v be_v reform_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n why_o do_v he_o not_o in_o s._n steven_n sermon_n cut_v of_o the_o number_n of_o five_o soul_n from_o seventie_o five_o because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n 20_o must_v such_o difficulty_n and_o diversity_n be_v resolve_v by_o chap_a and_o change_v hack_v and_o hew_v the_o sacred_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n see_v into_o what_o perplexity_n wilful_a heresy_n and_o arrogancy_n have_v drive_v they_o to_o discredit_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o the_o father_n expositió_n according_a to_o the_o same_o for_o that_o be_v the_o original_a cause_n of_o this_o and_o beside_o that_o they_o may_v have_v always_o this_o evasion_n it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o so_o seem_v jolly_a fellow_n and_o great_a clerk_n unto_o the_o ignorant_a people_n what_o do_v they_o they_o admit_v only_o the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o old_a test_n and_o the_o greek_a in_o the_o new_a to_o be_v the_o true_a and_o authentical_a text_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereupon_o this_o follow_v that_o they_o reject_v and_o must_v needs_o reject_v the_o greek_a of_o the_o old_a test_n called_z
the_o septuaginta_fw-la as_o false_a because_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n new_a their_o perplexity_n in_o defend_v both_o the_o hebrue_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a which_o be_v reject_v thereupon_o it_o follow_v again_o that_o wheresoever_o those_o place_n so_o disagree_v from_o the_o hebrew_n be_v cite_v by_o christ_n or_o the_o evangelist_n &_o apostle_n there_o also_o they_o must_v be_v reject_v because_o they_o disagree_v from_o the_o hebrew_n and_o so_o yet_o again_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o true_a because_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n verítie_n and_o consequent_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o write_n of_o hís_a apostle_n must_v be_v reform_v to_o say_v the_o least_o because_o they_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 21_o all_o which_o must_v needs_o follow_v if_o this_o be_v a_o good_a consequence_n i_o find_v it_o not_o in_o moses_n nor_o in_o the_o hebrew_n therefore_o i_o strike_v it_o out_o as_o beza_n do_v and_o say_v concern_v the_o foresay_a word_n qui_fw-la fuit_fw-la cainan_n this_o consequence_n therefore_o let_v we_o see_v how_o they_o will_v justify_v and_o withal_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o whether_o they_o will_v discredit_v the_o new_a testament_n because_o of_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la or_o credit_n the_o septuaginta_fw-la because_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o how_o they_o can_v credit_n one_o &_o discredit_v the_o other_o where_o both_o agree_v &_o consent_v together_o or_o whether_o they_o will_v discredit_v both_o for_o credit_n of_o the_o hebrew_n or_o rather_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o some_o other_o way_n to_o reconcile_v both_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n better_a than_o beza_n impudent_a presumption_n which_o if_o they_o will_v not_o maintain_v let_v they_o flat_o confess_v that_o he_o do_v wicked_o and_o not_o as_o they_o do_v defend_v every_o word_n and_o deed_n of_o their_o master_n be_v it_o never_o so_o heinous_a or_o salve_v it_o at_o the_o least_o greek_n how_o the_o father_n reconcile_v the_o say_a hebrew_n and_o greek_n 22_o alas_o how_o far_o be_v these_o man_n from_o the_o modesty_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o seek_v all_o other_o mean_v to_o resolve_v difficulty_n rather_o than_o to_o do_v violence_n to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o when_o they_o find_v no_o way_n 15._o li._n 18._o the_o civit_n c._n 43._o 2_o lib._n de_fw-fr doct._n chr._n c._n 15._o they_o leave_v it_o to_o god_n s._n augustine_n concern_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o greek_a say_v often_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o utter_v by_o the_o one_o that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o utter_v by_o the_o other_o and_o s._n ambrose_n thus_o 6._o hexam_n li._n 3._o cap._n 6._o we_o have_v find_v many_o thing_n not_o idle_o add_v of_o the_o 70_o greek_a interpreter_n s._n hierom_n though_o a_o earnest_a patron_n of_o the_o hebrew_n not_o without_o cause_n paralip_n in_o prooem_n li._n paralip_n be_v at_o that_o time_n perhaps_o the_o hebrew_n verity_n in_o deed_n yet_o give_v many_o reason_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la and_o concern_v the_o foresay_a place_n of_o s._n luke_n he_o do_v give_v a_o reason_n thereof_o hebrai_n comment_fw-fr in_o 28._o esa_n and_o in_o quaestion_n hebrai_n both_o for_o the_o 70_o and_o for_o the_o evangelist_n that_o follow_v they_o neither_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o nor_o control_a they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o moses_n as_o beza_n speak_v that_o be_v by_o the_o hebrew_n other_o say_v concern_v cainan_n that_o moses_n may_v leave_v he_o out_o in_o the_o genealogy_n of_o sem_fw-mi by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n 1._o mat._n c._n 1._o that_o s._n matthew_n leave_v out_o three_o king_n in_o the_o genealogy_n of_o our_o saviour_n where_o if_o a_o man_n will_v control_v the_o evangelist_n by_o the_o hebrew_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o be_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n he_o shall_v be_v as_o wise_a and_o as_o honest_a a_o man_n as_o beza_n apost_n praef._n in_o act._n apost_n last_o venerable_a bede_n think_v it_o sufficient_a in_o this_o very_a difficulty_n of_o cainan_n to_o marvel_v at_o it_o reverent_o rather_o than_o to_o search_v it_o dangerous_o and_o thus_o far_o of_o pick_v quarrel_n to_o the_o original_a text_n and_o their_o good_a will_v to_o alter_v and_o change_v it_o as_o they_o listen_v if_o they_o may_v be_v suffer_v book_n the_o 5._o abuse_n of_o scripture_n corrupt_a translation_n which_o be_v the_o argument_n and_o purpose_n of_o this_o book_n 23_o which_o also_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o all_o their_o false_a translatíon_n be_v the_o principal_a point_n i_o mean_v to_o speak_v of_o most_o evident_o for_o as_o now_o they_o translate_v false_o to_o their_o purpose_n because_o they_o can_v not_o alter_v the_o text_n so_o will_v they_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a have_v the_o text_n agreeable_a to_o their_o translation_n for_o example_n he_o that_o translate_v ordinance_n when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a greek_a text_n iustification_n and_o tradition_n he_o will_v rather_o that_o it_o be_v ordinance_n also_o in_o the_o greek_a but_o because_o he_o can_v bring_v that_o about_o he_o do_v at_o the_o least_o what_o he_o can_v to_o make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v it_o be_v so_o by_o so_o translate_n it_o 24_o and_o this_o of_o all_o other_o be_v the_o most_o fine_a and_o subtle_a treachery_n against_o the_o scripture_n to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a reader_n withal_o 4._o 2_o cor._n 4._o which_o s._n paul_n call_v the_o secret_a thing_n of_o dishonesty_n and_o adulterate_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v mingle_v water_n with_o wine_n like_o false_a vintner_n when_o they_o give_v they_o for_o god_n word_n &_o under_o the_o name_n of_o god_n word_n their_o own_o word_n and_o not_o god_n forge_a and_o frame_v alter_v and_o change_v according_a to_o difference_n of_o time_n and_o variety_n of_o new_a opinion_n and_o diversity_n of_o humour_n and_o spirit_n diverse_o and_o different_o one_o heretic_n not_o only_o correct_v his_o fellow_n every_o day_n translation_n the_o heretic_n dissension_n about_o their_o translation_n but_o one_o egre_o refute_v and_o resolve_v a_o other_o 96.98_o other_o dial._n count_n melancth_v lind._o dubit_fw-la pag._n 84_o 96.98_o bucer_n and_o the_o osiandrian_o and_o tigurinorum_n and_o see_v zuingl_n resp_n 1._o and_o confess_v tigurinorum_n sacramentary_n against_o luther_n for_o false_a translation_n luther_n against_o munster_n beza_n against_o castaleo_n castaleo_n against_o beza_n caluin_n against_o seruetus_fw-la illyricus_n both_o against_o caluin_n and_o beza_n the_o puritan_n control_n the_o grosser_n caluiniste_n of_o our_o country_n yea_o the_o late_a translation_n of_o the_o self_n same_o heretic_n control_v the_o former_a exceed_o not_o only_o of_o oversight_n but_o of_o wilful_a falsification_n as_o it_o be_v notorious_a in_o the_o *_o 83.97_o ibid._n pag._n 83.97_o late_a edition_n of_o luther_n and_o beza_n and_o in_o our_o english_a bibles_n set_v forth_o in_o diverse_a year_n from_o tindal_n their_o first_o translator_n until_o this_o day_n 1580._o the_o new_a test_n of_o the_o year_n 1580._o yea_o which_o be_v more_o the_o english_a translatour_n of_o beza_n new_a testament_n control_v he_o and_o his_o translation_n which_o they_o protest_v to_o follow_v 36._o follow_v luc._n 3_o 36._o be_v afraid_a sometime_o and_o ashamed_a to_o express_v in_o english_a his_o false_a translation_n in_o the_o latin_n 25_o but_o in_o this_o catalogue_n of_o dissension_n falsifier_n and_o disagree_a translatour_n 21._o act._n 1_o 14_o &_o 2_o 23._o act._n 3_o 21._o i_o will_v not_o great_o rip_v up_o old_a fault_n neither_o abroad_o nor_o at_o home_o i_o leave_v luther_n false_a translation_n into_o the_o german_a tongue_n testament_n the_o german_a french_a and_o english_a corruption_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o the_o credit_n of_o staphylus_n apolog._n part_n 2._o and_o emserus_n praef_n annot._n in_o no._n test_n luth._o and_o other_o german_a writer_n of_o his_o own_o time_n that_o see_v they_o and_o read_v they_o and_o reckon_v the_o number_n of_o they_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n only_o about_o etc._n about_o see_v lind._o dubit_n p._n 84_o 85_o etc._n etc._n 1400_o heretical_a corruption_n i_o leave_v caluin_n and_o beza_n french_a corruption_n to_o so_o many_o worthy_a man_n as_o rest_n as_o vigour_n and_o the_o rest_n have_v note_v they_o in_o their_o french_a book_n against_o the_o say_a heretic_n tindals_n and_o his_o companion_n corruption_n in_o their_o first_o english_a bible_n to_o our_o learned_a countryman_n of_o that_o age_n &_o namely_o to_o the_o right_n reverend_a father_n and_o confessor_n bishop_n tonstal_n
he_o begin_v to_o read_v and_o translate_v the_o former_a scripture_n according_o thus_o have_v not_o we_o power_n to_o lead_v about_o a_o sister_n a_o wife_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o labour_v that_o you_o may_v make_v sure_a your_o vocation_n and_o election_n leave_v out_o the_o other_o word_n by_o good_a work_n and_o so_o do_v both_o the_o caluinist_n abroad_o and_o our_o english_a protestant_n at_o home_n read_v and_o translate_v at_o this_o day_n because_o they_o hold_v the_o self_n same_o heresy_n 37_o so_o do_v they_o in_o infinite_a place_n alter_v the_o old_a text_n which_o please_v they_o well_o before_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o they_o do_v it_o with_o brazen_a face_n and_o plain_a protestation_n have_v no_o shame_n nor_o remorse_n at_o all_o in_o flee_v from_o that_o which_o all_o antiquity_n with_o one_o consent_n allow_v and_o embrace_v until_o their_o unhappy_a day_n which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a condemnation_n of_o their_o novelty_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o any_o reasonable_a man_n that_o have_v any_o grace_n yet_o as_o i_o begin_v to_o admonish_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n we_o will_v not_o charge_v they_o for_o alter_v the_o ancient_a approve_a latin_a translation_n because_o they_o pretend_v to_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n and_o our_o purpose_n be_v not_o here_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n that_o now_o be_v before_o the_o ancient_a approve_a latin_a text_n which_o be_v do_v brief_o already_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o new_a testament_n partiality_n we_o charge_v they_o not_o with_o forsake_v the_o greek_a copy_n that_o agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a approve_a latin_a text_n though_o this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o their_o incredible_a partiality_n 38_o neither_o will_v we_o burden_v they_o for_o not_o follow_a the_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n when_o the_o same_o agree_v with_o most_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v great_a partiality_n in_o they_o &_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o a_o heretical_a wilful_a humour_n that_o among_o the_o greek_a copy_n themselves_o they_o reject_v that_o which_o most_o agree_v with_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n in_o place_n of_o controversy_n yet_o will_v we_o not_o i_o say_v neither_o in_o this_o case_n lay_v falsehood_n and_o corruption_n to_o their_o charge_n because_o they_o pretend_v to_o translate_v the_o common_a greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v one_o certain_a copy_n but_o here_o at_o the_o least_o let_v they_o show_v their_o fidelity_n &_o that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o exact_v translatour_n for_o here_o only_o shall_v they_o be_v examine_v and_o call_v to_o account_v text_n we_o charge_v they_o for_o forsake_v &_o false_a translate_n their_o own_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n 39_o and_o if_o they_o follow_v sincere_o their_o greeke_n and_o hebrew_n text_n which_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v and_o which_o they_o esteem_v the_o only_a authentical_a text_n so_o far_o we_o accuse_v they_o not_o of_o heretical_a corruption_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v evident_o prove_v that_o they_o shrink_v from_o the_o same_o also_o and_o translate_v a_o other_o thing_n and_o that_o wilful_o and_o of_o full_a intention_n to_o countenance_v their_o false_a religion_n and_o wicked_a opinion_n make_v the_o scripture_n to_o speak_v as_o they_o listen_v then_o we_o trust_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n for_o his_o own_o soul_n sake_n will_v easy_o see_v and_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n no_o reverence_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o conscience_n to_o deceive_v their_o reader_n he_o will_v perceive_v that_o the_o scripture_n make_v against_o they_o which_o they_o so_o pervert_v and_o corrupt_v for_o their_o purpose_n that_o neither_o the_o hebrew_n nor_o greek_a text_n be_v for_o they_o which_o they_o dare_v not_o translate_v true_o and_o sincere_o that_o their_o cause_n be_v naught_o which_o need_v such_o foul_a shift_n that_o they_o must_v needs_o know_v all_o this_o and_o therefore_o do_v wilful_o against_o their_o conscience_n &_o consequent_o be_v obstinate_a heretic_n 40_o and_o the_o more_o to_o understand_v their_o misery_n &_o wretchedness_n before_o we_o enter_v to_o examine_v their_o translation_n mark_v &_o gather_v of_o all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v in_o this_o preface_n their_o manifold_a flight_n &_o jump_v from_o one_o shift_n to_o a_o other_o &_o how_o catholic_a writer_n have_v pursue_v and_o chase_v they_o &_o follow_v they_o and_o drive_v they_o even_o to_o this_o extreme_a refuge_n and_o silly_a covert_n of_o false_a translation_n where_o also_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n yield_v or_o devise_v some_o new_a evasion_n which_o we_o can_v not_o yet_o imagine_v bound_n the_o diverse_a shift_n and_o flight_n that_o the_o protestant_n be_v drive_v unto_o by_o the_o catholic_n as_o it_o be_v the_o jump_v and_o turn_n of_o a_o hare_n before_o the_o bound_n 41_o first_n we_o be_v wont_v to_o make_v this_o offer_n as_o we_o think_v most_o reasonable_a and_o indifferent_a that_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v diverse_o expound_v of_o we_o and_o of_o they_o they_o neither_o be_v tie_v to_o our_o interpretation_n nor_o we_o to_o they_o but_o to_o put_v it_o to_o the_o arbitrement_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o general_a counsel_n of_o universal_a custom_n of_o time_n and_o place_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n no_o say_v they_o we_o will_v be_v our_o own_o judge_n and_o interpreter_n or_o follow_v luther_n if_o we_o be_v lutheran_n caluin_n if_o we_o be_v caluiniste_n and_o so_o forth_o 42_o this_o be_v of_o itself_o a_o shameless_a shift_n unless_o it_o be_v better_o colour_v the_o next_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a and_o plain_a &_o sufficient_a of_o themselves_o to_o determine_v every_o matter_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n only_o we_o be_v content_a because_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o so_o and_o we_o allege_v unto_o they_o the_o book_n of_o toble_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la maccabee_n no_o say_v they_o we_o admit_v none_o of_o these_o for_o scripture_n why_o so_o be_v they_o not_o approve_v canonical_a by_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o father_n that_o the_o other_o book_n be_v no_o matter_n say_v they_o luther_n admit_v they_o not_o caluin_n do_v not_o allow_v they_o 43_o well_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o in_o their_o own_o dance_n you_o allow_v at_o the_o least_o the_o jew_n canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o be_v all_o that_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o hebrew_n bible_n and_o all_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n without_o exception_n yea_o that_o we_o do_v in_o these_o book_n then_o will_v you_o be_v try_v by_o the_o vulgar_a ancient_a latin_a bible_n only_o use_v in_o all_o the_o west_n church_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n no._n will_v you_o be_v try_v by_o the_o greek_a bible_n of_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la interpreter_n so_o renown_v and_o authorise_v in_o our_o saviour_n own_o speech_n in_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n writing_n in_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n evermore_o no._n how_o then_o will_v you_o be_v try_v they_o answer_n only_o by_o the_o hebrew_n bible_n that_o now_o be_v and_o as_o now_o it_o be_v point_v with_o vowel_n will_v you_o so_o and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o only_o the_o true_a authentical_a hebrew_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v first_o put_v into_o the_o pen_n of_o those_o sacred_a writer_n we_o do_v think_v it_o say_v they_o and_o esteem_v it_o the_o only_a authentical_a and_o true_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 44_o we_o ask_v they_o again_o what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o that_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o in_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v thus_o as_o a_o lion_n my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n for_o that_o which_o in_o truth_n shall_v be_v thus_o they_o dig_v or_o pierce_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n be_v a_o evident_a prophecy_n of_o christ_n nail_v to_o the_o cross_n there_o in_o deed_n say_v they_o we_o follow_v not_o the_o hebrew_n but_o the_o greek_a text_n sometime_o than_o you_o follow_v the_o greek_a and_o not_o the_o hebrew_n only_o and_o what_o if_o the_o same_o greek_a text_n make_v for_o the_o catholic_n as_o in_o these_o place_n for_o example_n i_o have_v incline_v my_o hart_n to_o keep_v thy_o iustification_n for_o reward_n and_o redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n may_v we_o not_o obtain_v here_o the_o like_a favour_n at_o your_o hand_n for_o the_o greek_a text_n special_o when_o the_o hebrew_n do_v not_o disagree_v no_o say_v they_o nor_o in_o no_o other_o place_n where_o the_o greek_a be_v never_o so_o plain_a if_o the_o hebrew_n word_n at_o the_o least_o may_v be_v any_o otherwise_o
of_o purpose_n against_o our_o altar_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o their_o communion_n table_n see_v chap._n 17._o numb_a 15.16_o 12_o if_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o heresy_n when_o sacred_a image_n be_v break_v in_o piece_n altar_n dig_v down_o the_o catholic_a church_n authority_n deface_v 1562._o bib._n in_o king_n edw._n time_n print_v again_o 1562._o the_o king_n make_v supreme_a head_n than_o their_o translation_n be_v make_v according_o and_o if_o afterward_o when_o these_o error_n be_v well_o establish_v in_o the_o realm_n and_o have_v take_v root_n in_o the_o people_n heart_n all_o be_v alter_v and_o change_v in_o their_o late_a translation_n and_o now_o they_o can_v not_o find_v that_o in_o the_o greek_a which_o be_v in_o the_o former_a translation_n what_o be_v it_o at_o the_o first_o but_o wilful_a corruption_n to_o serve_v the_o time_n that_o then_o be_v see_v chap._n 3.5_o chap._n 17._o nu_fw-la 15._o chap._n 15._o nu_fw-la 22._o 13_o if_o at_o the_o first_o revolt_n when_o none_o be_v note_v for_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n but_o themselves_o they_o do_v not_o once_o put_v the_o name_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n in_o the_o bible_n but_o in_o steed_n thereof_o division_n and_o sect_n in_o so_o much_o that_o for_o a_o heretic_n they_o say_v a_o author_n of_o sect_n 3._o bib._n 1562._o tit._n 3._o what_o may_v we_o judge_v of_o it_o but_o as_o of_o wilful_a corruption_n see_v chap._n 4._o numb_a 3._o 14_o if_o they_o translate_v so_o absurd_o at_o the_o first_o that_o themselves_o be_v drive_v to_o change_v it_o for_o shame_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v at_o the_o first_o wilful_a corruption_n for_o example_n when_o it_o be_v in_o the_o first_o temple_n and_o in_o the_o late_a altar_n in_o the_o first_o always_o congregation_n in_o the_o late_a always_o church_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o king_n as_o chief_a head_n in_o the_o late_a to_o the_o king_n as_o have_v preeminence_n so_o do_v beza_n first_o translate_v carcase_n and_o afterward_o soul_n which_o alteration_n in_o all_o these_o place_n be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v negligence_n at_o the_o first_o or_o ignorance_n but_o a_o plain_a heretical_a intention_n see_v chap._n 17._o numb_a 15._o chap._n 5._o nu_fw-la 4.5_o chap._n 15._o numb_a 22._o chap._n 7._o nu_fw-la 2._o 15_o if_o they_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o all_o their_o translation_n but_o flee_v to_o that_o namely_o which_o now_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n &_o if_o that_o which_o be_v now_o read_v in_o their_o church_n differ_v in_o the_o point_n aforesaid_a from_o that_o that_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n &_o if_o from_o both_o these_o they_o flee_v to_o the_o geneva_n bible_n and_o from_o that_o again_o to_o the_o other_o aforesaid_a what_o shall_v we_o judge_v of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o but_o that_o all_o be_v voluntary_a and_o as_o they_o listen_v see_v chap._n 3._o numb_a 10.11.12_o cha_n 10._o numb_a 12._o 16_o if_o they_o glad_o use_v these_o word_n in_o ill_a part_n where_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o original_a text_n procession_n shrine_n devotion_n excommunicate_a image_n and_o avoid_v these_o word_n which_o be_v in_o the_o original_n hymn_n grace_n mystery_n sacrament_n church_n altar_n priest_n catholic_a tradition_n iustification_n be_v it_o not_o plain_a that_o they_o do_v it_o of_o purpose_n to_o disgrace_n or_o suppress_v the_o say_a thing_n and_o speech_n use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n see_v chap._n 21._o numb_a 5._o &_o seq_fw-la chap._n 12._o numb_a 3._o 17_o if_o in_o a_o case_n that_o make_v for_o they_o they_o strain_v the_o very_a original_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o in_o a_o case_n that_o make_v against_o they_o they_o neglect_v it_o altogether_o what_o be_v this_o but_o wilful_a and_o of_o purpose_n see_v chap._n 7._o nu_fw-la 36._o 18_o if_o in_o word_n of_o ambiguous_a and_o diverse_a signification_n they_o will_v have_v it_o signify_v here_o or_o there_o as_o it_o please_v they_o and_o that_o so_o vehement_o that_o here_o it_o must_v needs_o so_o signify_v and_o there_o it_o must_v not_o and_o both_o this_o and_o that_o to_o one_o end_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o opinion_n 5._o beza_n in_o 1._o cor._n 7._o v._n 1._o &_o 9_o v._o 5._o what_o be_v this_o but_o wilful_a translation_n so_o do_v beza_n urge_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o signify_v wife_n and_o not_o to_o signify_v wife_n both_o against_o virginity_n and_o chastity_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o english_a bible_n translate_v according_o 1579_o bib._n a_o 1579_o see_v chap._n 15._o nu_fw-la 11.12_o 19_o if_o the_o puritan_n and_o grosser_n caluiniste_n disagree_v about_o the_o translation_n one_o part_n prefer_v the_o geneva_n english_a bible_n the_o other_o the_o bible_n read_v in_o their_o church_n and_o if_o the_o lutheran_n condemn_v the_o zwinglians_n &_o caluiniste_n translation_n and_o contrariwise_o and_o if_o all_o sectary_n reprove_v each_o a_o other_o translation_n what_o do_v it_o argue_v but_o that_o the_o translation_n differ_v according_a to_o their_o diverse_a opinion_n see_v their_o book_n write_v one_o against_o a_o other_o 6._o luc._n 3._o v._n 36._o act._n 1._o v._n 14._o c._n 2._o v._n 23._o c._n 3._o v._n 21._o c._n 26._o v._n 20._o 2_o thes_n 2._o v._n 15._o etc._n etc._n 5._o v._n 6._o 20_o if_o the_o english_a geneva_n bibles_n themselves_o dare_v not_o follow_v their_o master_n beza_n who_o they_o profess_v to_o translate_v because_o in_o their_o opinion_n he_o go_v wide_v and_o that_o in_o place_n of_o controversy_n how_o wilful_a be_v he_o in_o so_o translate_n see_v chap._n 12._o numb_a 6.8_o cha_n 13._o numb_a 1._o 21_o if_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o reprehend_v the_o old_a vulgar_a translation_n and_o appeal_v to_o the_o greek_a and_o yet_o in_o place_n of_o controversy_n sometime_o for_o their_o more_o advantage_n as_o they_o think_v they_o leave_v the_o greek_a and_o follow_v our_o latin_a translation_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o voluntary_a and_o partial_a translation_n see_v chap._n 2._o nu_fw-la 8._o chap._n 6._o nu_fw-la 10.21_o chap._n 7._o nu_fw-la 39_o chap._n 10._o nu_fw-la 6._o 22_o if_o otherwise_o they_o avoid_v this_o word_n iustificationes_fw-la 19.8_o peza_n luc._n 1._o ro._n 2._o apoc._n 19.8_o altogether_o &_o yet_o translate_v it_o when_o they_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o with_o a_o commentary_n *_o 8._o beza_n in_o c._n 19_o apoc._n v._n 8._o that_o it_o signify_v good_a work_n that_o be_v testimony_n of_o a_o lively_a faith_n do_v not_o this_o heretical_a commentary_n show_v their_o heretical_a meaning_n when_o they_o avoid_v the_o word_n altogether_o see_v chap._n 8._o nu_fw-la 1.2.3_o 23_o when_o by_o add_v to_o the_o text_n at_o their_o pleasure_n they_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v 1579._o ro._n 5._o v._n 18._o no._n test_n a_o 1580._o bib._n 1579._o that_o by_o adam_n offence_n sin_n come_v on_o all_o man_n but_o that_o by_o christ_n justice_n the_o benefit_n only_o abound_v towards_o all_o man_n not_o that_o justice_n come_v on_o all_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o case_n alike_o without_o any_o such_o diverse_a addition_n to_o wit_n *_o 18._o ro._n 5._o v._n 18._o that_o we_o be_v true_o make_v just_a by_o christ_n as_o by_o adam_n we_o be_v make_v sinner_n be_v not_o this_o most_o wilful_a corruption_n for_o their_o heresy_n of_o imputative_a and_o fantastical_a justice_n see_v chap._n 11._o nu_fw-la 1._o 24_o but_o if_o in_o this_o case_n of_o justification_n when_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o only_a faith_n justify_v &_o we_o say_v no_o have_v the_o express_a word_n of_o s_o james_n they_o say_v yea_o have_v no_o express_a scripture_n for_o it_o if_o in_o this_o case_n they_o will_v add_v only_o to_o the_o very_a text_n be_v it_o not_o most_o horrible_a and_o devilish_a corruption_n so_o do_v luther_n *_o 198._o ja._n 2._o v._n 24._o ro._n 3._o v._n 28._o luth._o tom_n 2._o fol._n 405._o edit_n witteb_n a_o 1551._o whitak_n pag._n 198._o who_o our_o english_a protestant_n honour_n as_o their_o father_n and_o in_o this_o heresy_n of_o only_a faith_n be_v his_o own_o child_n see_v chap._n 12._o knowledge_n their_o ignorance_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n tongue_n or_o their_o false_a &_o wilful_a translation_n thereof_o against_o their_o knowledge_n 25_o if_o these_o that_o account_n themselves_o the_o great_a grecian_n &_o hebrician_n of_o the_o world_n will_v so_o translate_v for_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o cause_n as_o though_o they_o have_v no_o skill_n in_o the_o world_n and_o as_o though_o they_o know_v neither_o the_o signification_n of_o word_n nor_o propriety_n of_o phrase_n in_o the_o say_a language_n be_v it_o not_o to_o be_v esteem_v shameless_a corruption_n 26_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o
german_a heretic_n 51._o brentius_n melancth_v see_v linda_n dubi_fw-la dial._n 1._o c._n 12_o psal_n 51._o who_o to_o maintain_v this_o heresy_n that_o all_o our_o work_n be_v they_o never_o so_o good_a be_v sin_n translate_v for_o tibi_fw-la soli_fw-la peccavi_fw-la to_o the_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v 198._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whitak_n pag._n 198._o thus_o tibi_fw-la solum_fw-la peccavi_fw-la that_o be_v i_o have_v nothing_o else_o but_o sin_v whatsoever_o i_o do_v i_o sin_n whereas_o neither_o the_o greek_a nor_o the_o hebrew_n will_v possible_o admit_v that_o sense_n let_v these_o pass_n as_o lutheran_n yet_o wilful_a corrupter_n *_o 6._o ro._n 5_o v._o 6._o and_o acknowledge_v of_o our_o english_a protestant_n for_o their_o good_a brethren_n but_o if_o beza_n translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o we_o be_v yet_o of_o no_o strength_n as_o the_o geneva_n english_a bible_n also_o do_v interpret_v it_o whereas_o every_o young_a grecian_a know_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v weak_a feeble_a infirm_a and_o not_o altogether_o without_o strength_n be_v not_o this_o of_o purpose_n to_o take_v away_o man_n free_a will_v altogether_o see_v chap._n 10._o nu_fw-la 13._o 27_o if_o caluin_n translate_v 〈◊〉_d 1_o cor._n 15._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la ego_fw-la sed_fw-la gratia_fw-la dei_fw-la quae_fw-la mihi_fw-la aderat_fw-la may_v not_o mean_a grecian_n control_v he_o that_o he_o also_o translate_v false_o against_o free_a will_v because_o the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v require_v some_o other_o participle_n to_o be_v understand_v that_o shall_v signify_v a_o cooperation_n with_o free_a will_v to_o wit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o labour_v with_o i_o see_v chap._n 10._o nu_fw-la 2._o 28_o if_o when_o the_o hebrew_n bear_v in_o different_o to_o say_v sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o unto_o thou_o the_o desire_v thereof_o shall_v be_v subject_a 7._o gen._n 4._o v._n 7._o &_o thou_o i_o halt_v rule_n over_o it_o 1579._o a_o 1579._o the_o geneva_n english_a bible_n translate_v the_o first_o without_o scruple_n &_o the_o late_a not_z because_o of_o the_o hebrew_n grammar_n be_v not_o this_o also_o most_o wilful_a against_o free_a will_v see_v chap._n 10._o nu_fw-la 9_o 29_o if_o caluin_n affirm_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v signify_v propter_fw-la reverentiam_fw-la hebr._n calu._n in_o 5._o hebr._n because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o so_o use_v and_o beza_n avouch_v the_o same_o more_o earnest_o 1579_o bib._n a_o 1579_o and_o the_o english_a bible_n translate_v according_o which_o may_v be_v confute_v by_o infinite_a example_n in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o be_v confute_v by_o illyricus_n the_o lutheran_n be_v it_o not_o a_o sign_n either_o of_o pass_v ignorance_n or_o of_o most_o wilful_a corruption_n to_o maintain_v the_o blasphemy_n that_o hereupon_o they_o conclude_v see_v chap._n 7._o nu_fw-la 42.43_o 30_o if_o beza_n in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n contend_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v reverence_n or_o piety_n but_o such_o a_o fear_n as_o have_v horror_n and_o astonishment_n of_o mind_n &_o in_o a_o other_o place_n say_v of_o this_o self_n same_o word_n clean_o contrary_a what_o be_v it_o but_o of_o purpose_n to_o uphold_v the_o say_a blasphemy_n see_v cha_n 7._o nu_fw-la 39.40_o 31_o if_o he_o translate_v for_o god_n foreknowledge_n god_n providence_n for_o soul_n carcase_n for_o hell_n grave_n 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 2._o v._n 23._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ibid._n v._o 27._o to_o what_o end_n be_v this_o but_o for_o certain_a heretical_a conclusion_n and_o if_o upon_o admonition_n he_o alter_v his_o translation_n for_o shame_n and_o yet_o *_o edit_fw-la annota_fw-la in_o no._n test_n post_fw-la edit_fw-la protest_v that_o he_o understand_v it_o as_o he_o do_v before_o do_v he_o not_o translate_v before_o wilful_o according_a to_o his_o obstinate_a opinion_n see_v chap._n 7._o 32_o if_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o avouch_v that_o 〈◊〉_d annot._n in_o act._n 2._o v._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sheol_n signify_v nothing_o else_o in_o hebrew_n but_o a_o grave_n whereas_o all_o hebrician_n know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a and_o usual_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o hell_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o other_o word_n keber_n be_v for_o a_o grave_n who_o will_v think_v he_o will_v so_o endanger_v his_o estimation_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n but_o that_o a_o heretical_a purpose_n against_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n blind_v he_o see_v chap._n 7._o 33_o and_o if_o all_o the_o english_a bibles_n translate_v according_o to_o wit_n for_o hell_n grave_n wheresoever_o the_o scripture_n may_v mean_v any_o low_a place_n that_o be_v not_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o where_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v that_o hell_n there_o they_o never_o avoid_v so_o to_o translate_v it_o be_v it_o not_o a_o evident_a argument_n that_o they_o know_v very_o well_o the_o proper_a signification_n but_o of_o purpose_n they_o will_v never_o use_v it_o to_o their_o disadvantage_n in_o the_o question_n of_o limbus_n purgatory_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n have_v 7._o 34_o if_o further_o yet_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o controversy_n beza_n will_v be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v for_o so_o he_o say_v if_o the_o grammarian_n will_v give_v he_o leave_v that_o *_o 〈◊〉_d annot._n in_o act._n 2._o v._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d chebel_n with_o five_o point_n signify_v funem_fw-la inferni_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v he_o will_v translate_v solutis_fw-la funibus_fw-la mortis_fw-la not_o solutis_fw-la doloribus_fw-la inferni_fw-la no_o less_o than_o chebel_n with_o six_o point_n be_v he_o not_o wonderful_o set_v to_o maintain_v his_o opinion_n that_o will_v change_v the_o nature_n of_o word_n if_o he_o may_v for_o his_o purpose_n 35_o if_o passives_n must_v be_v turn_v into_o actives_a and_o actives_a into_o passives_n participle_n disagree_v in_o case_n from_o their_o substantive_n or_o rather_o be_v pluck_v and_o separate_v from_o their_o true_a substantive_n soloecismes_fw-gr imagine_a where_o the_o construction_n be_v most_o agreeable_a error_n divise_v to_o creep_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n and_o such_o like_a who_o will_v so_o presume_v in_o the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o have_v all_o grammar_n and_o word_n and_o phrase_n and_o construction_n at_o his_o commandment_n but_o beza_n &_o his_o like_a for_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o cause_n see_v chap._n 5._o nu_fw-la 6._o and_o the_o number_n next_o follow_a in_o this_o chapter_n 36_o for_o example_n s_o peter_n say_v 〈◊〉_d act._n 3_o 21._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heaven_n must_v receive_v christ_n he_o translate_v christ_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o heaven_n which_o caluin_n himself_o mislike_v the_o geneva_n english_a bible_n be_v afraid_a to_o follow_v illyricus_n the_o lutheran_n reprehend_v and_o yet_o m._n whitaker_n take_v the_o advantage_n of_o this_o translation_n 43._o pag._n 43._o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n natural_a body_n be_v so_o contain_v in_o heaven_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n for_o he_o know_v that_o this_o be_v his_o marsters_n purpose_n and_o intent_n in_o so_o translate_n this_o it_o be_v when_o the_o blind_a follow_n the_o blind_a yea_o rather_o when_o they_o see_v and_o will_v be_v blind_a for_o certain_a it_o be_v &_o i_o appeal_v to_o their_o great_a grecian_n that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v take_v for_o good_a in_o their_o divinity_n it_o will_v be_v esteem_v most_o false_a in_o their_o greek_a school_n both_o of_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n &_o howsoever_o they_o may_v presume_v to_o translate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o this_o sort_n sure_o not_o man_n no_o not_o themselves_o will_v so_o translate_v demosthenes_n for_o save_v their_o credit_n and_o estimation_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n see_v chap._n 17._o nu_fw-la 7.8.9_o 37_o but_o there_o be_v yet_o worse_o stuff_n behind_o to_o wit_n the_o famous_a place_n luc._n 22._o where_o beza_n translate_v thus_o hoc_fw-la poculum_fw-la nowm_fw-la testamentum_fw-la per_fw-la meum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la qui_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la funditur_fw-la whereas_o in_o the_o greek_a in_o all_o copy_n without_o exception_n he_o confess_v that_o in_o true_a grammatical_a construction_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v say_v quod_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la funditur_fw-la and_o therefore_o he_o say_v it_o be_v either_o a_o plain_a soloecophane_v and_o according_a to_o that_o presumption_n he_o bold_o translate_v or_o a_o corruption_n creep_v out_o of_o the_o margin_n into_o the_o text_n and_o as_o for_o the_o word_n soloecophane_v we_o understand_v he_o that_o he_o mean_v a_o plain_a solecism_n and_o fault_n in_o grammar_n &_o so_o do_v m._n whitaker_n 34.35_o pag._n 34.35_o but_o m._n fulke_n say_v
conversation_n be_v without_o covetousness_n and_o say_v not_o let_v marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a both_o be_v express_v a_o like_a by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n as_o the_o rest_n that_o go_v before_o and_o follow_v see_v chap._n 15._o nu_fw-la 15._o 45_o be_v we_o to_o suspicious_a think_v you_o 7._o hebr._n 5._o v._o 7._o how_o can_v fear_v be_v translate_v that_o which_o he_o fear_v 3._o fear_v beza_n act._n 26._o v._n 20._o 2_o thes_n 2_o &_o 3._o repentance_n they_o that_o repent_v or_o amend_v their_o life_n tradition_n the_o doctrine_n deliver_v temple_n shrine_n idol_n devotion_n every_o humane_a creature_n all_o ordinance_n of_o man_n foreknowledge_n providence_n soul_n carcase_n hell_n grave_n altar_n temple_n table_n altar_n and_o such_o like_a 46_o what_o cause_v these_o strange_a speech_n in_o their_o english_a bibles_n 1579._o psal_n 86_o 13._o bib._n 1579._o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o the_o grave_n thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o low_a grave_n a_o covetous_a man_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o eldership_n haile_o free_o belove_v sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o thou_o shall_v rule_v over_o he_o break_v of_o thy_o sin_n with_o righteousness_n for_o redeem_v with_o alm_n jealousy_n be_v cruel_a as_o the_o grave_n for_o as_o hell_n cant._n cant._n 8._o bib._n a_o 1579._o the_o grief_n of_o the_o grave_n catch_v i_o psal_n 116._o and_o god_n will_v redeem_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n 48._o psal_n 48._o o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n os_fw-la 13._o and_o such_o like_a what_o make_v caluin_n so_o translate_v into_o latin_a that_o if_o you_o turn_v it_o into_o english_a the_o sense_n be_v that_o god_n poured_a water_n upon_o we_o abundant_o 3._o tit._n 3._o mean_v the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o else_o but_o because_o he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o necessity_n of_o material_a water_n in_o baptism_n as_o in_o his_o commentary_n and_o beza_n it_o be_v evident_a 47_o i_o have_v mean_v to_o have_v but_o brief_o skim_v over_o these_o thing_n but_o multitude_n of_o matter_n make_v i_o to_o long_o as_o it_o chance_v to_o a_o man_n that_o wade_v through_o miry_a and_o foul_a place_n and_o yet_o the_o great_a demonstration_n that_o they_o be_v wilful_a corrupter_n be_v behind_o which_o only_o i_o will_v add_v and_o for_o the_o rest_n refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o whole_a book_n 48_o doubt_v you_o whether_o they_o translate_v of_o purpose_n and_o partiality_n infavour_v of_o their_o opinion_n you_o shall_v hear_v themselves_o say_v so_o and_o protest_v it_o if_o i_o deal_v with_o lutheran_n this_o one_o testimony_n of_o luther_n be_v sufficient_a who_o be_v ask_v why_o he_o add_v 1551._o tom._n 2._o fol._n 405._o edit_n witteb_n a_o 1551._o only_o into_o the_o text_n ro._n 3_o answer_v that_o he_o do_v it_o to_o explicate_v the_o apostle_n sense_n more_o plain_o that_o be_v to_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v more_o plain_o that_o faith_n only_o justify_v and_o his_o disciple_n illyricus_n dispute_v the_o matter_n that_o the_o apostle_n say_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n assertion_n the_o express_a testimony_n of_o beza_n who_o the_o english_a heretical_a translation_n follow_v herein_o that_o he_o do_v wilful_o and_o of_o purpose_n translate_v against_o such_o &_o such_o catholic_a assertion_n say_v in_o deed_n only_a faith_n but_o because_o i_o deal_v rather_o with_o our_o english_a caluiniste_n and_o beza_n be_v their_o chief_a translator_n &_o a_o captain_n among_o they_o who_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o new_a test_n a_o 1580_o and_o by_o the_o very_a name_n of_o their_o geneva_n bibles_n let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o say_v 49_o first_o concern_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o erasmus_n translate_v agite_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la repent_v or_o do_v penance_n this_o interpretation_n say_v he_o i_o refuse_v for_o many_o cause_n but_o for_o this_o especial_o that_o many_o ignorat_fw-la person_n have_v take_v hereby_o a_o occasion_n of_o the_o false_a opinion_n of_o satisfaction_n wherewith_o the_o church_n be_v trouble_v at_o this_o day_n loe_o of_o purpose_n against_o satisfaction_n he_o will_v not_o translate_v the_o greek_a word_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o as_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o signify_v both_o in_o this_o book_n and_o in_o the_o annotation_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n 8._o mat._n 3._o v._n 8._o a_o little_a after_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o word_n he_o say_v why_o i_o have_v change_v the_o name_n poenitentia_fw-la i_o have_v tell_v a_o little_a before_o *_o citato_fw-la loco_fw-la supra_fw-la citato_fw-la protest_v that_o he_o will_v never_o use_v those_o word_n but_o resipiscere_fw-la and_o resipiscentia_fw-la that_o be_v amendment_n of_o life_n because_o of_o their_o heresy_n that_o repentance_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a amendment_n of_o former_a life_n without_o recompense_n or_o satisfaction_n or_o penance_n for_o the_o sin_n before_o commit_v see_v chap._n 13._o 50_o again_o concern_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d justification_n which_o in_o the_o scripture_n very_o often_o signify_v the_o commandment_n he_o say_v thus_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n of_o the_o bible_n mean_v the_o septuaginta_fw-la apply_v this_o word_n to_o signify_v the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n 6._o luc._n 1._o v._n 6._o and_o therefore_o common_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v translate_v word_n for_o word_n justificationes_fw-la which_o interpretation_n therefore_o only_o i_o reject_v that_o i_o may_v take_v away_o this_o occasion_n also_o of_o cavil_v against_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o so_o for_o iustificationes_fw-la he_o put_v constituta_fw-la tully_n word_n forsooth_o as_o he_o say_v can_v you_o have_v a_o more_o plain_a testimony_n of_o his_o heretical_a purpose_n 51_o again_o when_o he_o have_v reject_v this_o translation_n act._n 2._o v._n 27_o non_fw-la derelinques_fw-la animan_n meam_fw-la in_o inferno_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n because_o as_o he_o say_v hereupon_o grew_a the_o error_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n of_o limbus_n and_o of_o purgatory_n at_o length_n he_o conclude_v thus_o whereas_o the_o doubtful_a iuterpretation_n of_o one_o or_o two_o word_n have_v bring_v forth_o so_o many_o monster_n i_o choose_v rather_o grave_n rather_o loe_o how_o simple_o anima_fw-la carcase_n infernus_fw-la grave_n simple_o for_o foul_a to_o say_v carcase_n for_o hell_n 21._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 3._o v._n 21._o grave_n then_o to_o foster_v these_o foul_a error_n 52_o again_o when_o he_o have_v translate_v for_o who_o heaven_n mustreceive_v thus_o who_o must_v be_v contain_v in_o heaven_n he_o say_v whereas_o we_o have_v use_v the_o passive_a kind_n of_o speech_n rather_o than_o the_o active_a which_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a we_o do_v it_o to_o avoid_v all_o ambiguity_n for_o it_o be_v very_o expedient_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o perspicuous_a testimony_n against_o they_o that_o for_o ascend_v by_o faith_n into_o heaven_n so_o to_o be_v join_v to_o our_o head_n obstinate_o maintain_v that_o christ_n must_v be_v call_v again_o out_o of_o heaven_n unto_o us._n mean_v his_o presence_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n &_o inveigh_v no_o less_o against_o the_o lutheran_n then_o the_o catholic_n as_o the_o *_o illyr_n flac._n illyr_n lutheran_n do_v here_o against_o he_o for_o this_o wilful_a interpretation_n &_o that_o by_o caluin_n own_o judgement_n who_o think_v it_o a_o force_a translation_n 53_o but_o beza_n go_v forward_o still_o in_o this_o kind_n ro._n 5._o v._n 18._o whereas_o erasmus_n have_v put_v propagatum_fw-la est_fw-la indifferent_o both_o of_o adam_n sin_n which_o make_v we_o true_o sinner_n and_o of_o christ_n justice_n which_o make_v we_o true_o just_a he_o reject_v it_o among_o other_o cause_n why_o it_o displease_v he_o say_v that_o old_a error_n of_o the_o sophist_n mean_v catholic_n which_o for_o imputative_a justice_n put_v a_o inherent_a quality_n in_o the_o place_n be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o execrable_a to_o all_o good_a man_n that_o i_o think_v nothing_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v avoid_v as_o it_o 54_o these_o few_o example_n prove_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o scripture_n translate_v verbatim_o exact_o &_o according_a to_o the_o proper_a use_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n do_v by_o the_o heretic_n confession_n make_v for_o the_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o beza_n say_v he_o alter_v the_o word_n into_o other_o &_o i_o think_v it_o may_v suffice_v any_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o judge_v of_o his_o purpose_n and_o meaning_n in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o translation_n and_o consequent_o of_o they_o that_o either_o allow_v
the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o pagan_n and_o christian_n that_o commit_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o heinous_a sin_n whatsoever_o command_v the_o christian_a in_o that_o case_n to_o be_v avoid_v for_o his_o amendment_n leave_v the_o pagan_a to_o himself_o &_o to_o god_n as_o have_v not_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v of_o he_o 10_o but_o to_o this_o the_o answer_n belike_o will_v be_v make_v 35._o w._n fulke_o confut._n of_o john_n howlet_n so_o 35._o as_o one_o of_o they_o have_v already_o answer_v in_o the_o like_a case_n that_o in_o the_o english_a bible_n appoint_v to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n it_o be_v otherwise_o and_o even_o as_o we_o will_v have_v it_o correct_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o it_o have_v be_v good_a before_o we_o enter_v into_o such_o beinous_a accusation_n to_o have_v examine_v our_o ground_n that_o they_o have_v be_v true_a as_o though_o we_o accuse_v they_o not_o true_o of_o false_a translation_n unless_o it_o be_v false_a in_o that_o one_o bible_n which_o for_o the_o present_n be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n or_o as_o though_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o they_o how_o their_o other_o english_a bibles_n be_v translate_v or_o as_o though_o the_o people_n read_v not_o all_o indifferent_o without_o prohibition_n and_o may_v be_v abuse_v by_o every_o one_o of_o they_o or_o as_o though_o the_o bible_n which_o now_o be_v read_v as_o we_o think_v in_o their_o church_n 5._o bib._n 1577._o col._n 3._o v._n 5._o have_v not_o the_o like_a absurd_a translation_n yea_o more_o absurd_a even_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o image_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v or_o as_o though_o we_o must_v first_o learn_v what_o english_a translation_n be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n which_o be_v hard_a to_o know_v it_o change_v so_o oft_o before_o we_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o accuse_v they_o of_o false_a translation_n or_o as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o bible_n that_o be_v for_o many_o year_n read_v in_o their_o church_n &_o be_v yet_o in_o every_o man_n hand_n which_o have_v this_o absurd_a translation_n whereof_o we_o have_v last_o speak_v 11_o sure_o the_o bible_n that_o we_o most_o accuse_v not_o only_o in_o this_o point_n 1562._o bib._n 1562._o but_o for_o sundry_a other_o most_o gross_a fault_n and_o heretical_a translation_n speak_v of_o in_o other_o place_n be_v that_o bible_n which_o be_v authorise_v by_o cramner_n their_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o read_v all_o king_n edward_n time_n in_o their_o church_n &_o as_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o late_a print_n thereof_o again_o a_o 1562_o a_o great_a part_n of_o this_o queen_n reign_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v so_o long_o read_v in_o all_o their_o church_n with_o this_o venomous_a &_o corrupt_a translation_n of_o image_n always_o in_o steed_n of_o idol_n that_o it_o make_v the_o deceive_v people_n of_o their_o sect_n to_o despise_v contemn_v and_o abandon_v the_o very_a sign_n and_o image_n of_o their_o salvation_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n the_o holy_a rood_n or_o crucifix_n represent_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o bitter_a passion_n and_o death_n the_o sacred_a image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n &_o of_o s._n john_n evangelist_n represent_v their_o stand_n by_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o his_o passion_n 26._o io._n 19_o v._n 26._o in_o so_o much_o that_o now_o by_o experience_n we_o see_v the_o foul_a inconvenience_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o all_o other_o image_n and_o picture_n of_o infamous_a harlot_n and_o heretic_n of_o heathen_a tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n be_v lawful_a in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n and_o their_o house_n parlour_n and_o chamber_n be_v garnish_v with_o they_o only_o sacred_a image_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v esteem_v idolatrous_a and_o have_v be_v open_o deface_v in_o most_o spiteful_a manner_n and_o burn_v to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o saint_n 12_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o bible_n that_o at_o this_o day_n be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n if_o it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o year_n 1577_o it_o be_v worse_o sometime_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o image_n than_o the_o other_o for_o where_o the_o other_o read_v 5._o col._n 3._o v._n 5._o covetousness_n which_o be_v worship_v of_o idol_n there_o this_o late_a whereunto_o they_o appeal_v read_v thus_o covetousness_n which_o be_v worship_v of_o image_n and_o eph._n 5._o it_o read_v as_o absurd_o as_o the_o other_o 35._o w._n fulke_o confut._n fol._n 35._o a_o covetous_a man_n which_o be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n loe_o this_o be_v the_o english_a bible_n which_o they_o refer_v we_o unto_o as_o better_v translate_v and_o as_o correct_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o former_a but_o because_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o these_o place_n that_o his_o also_o be_v partly_o worse_o and_o partly_o as_o il_fw-mi as_o the_o other_o therefore_o this_o great_a confuter_n of_o m._n john_n houlet_n flee_v once_o more_o 1579._o fol._n 36._o bib._n 1579._o to_o the_o geneva_n english_a bible_n say_v thus_o we_o read_v and_o so_o we_o translate_v to_o wit_n a_o covetous_a person_n which_o be_v a_o idolater_n where_o shall_v we_o have_v these_o good_a fellow_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o they_o will_v stand_v to_o any_o of_o their_o translation_n from_o the_o first_o read_v in_o their_o church_n they_o flee_v to_o that_o that_o be_v now_o read_v &_o from_o this_o again_o to_o the_o late_a geneva_n english_a bibles_n neither_o read_v in_o their_o church_n as_o we_o suppose_v nor_o of_o great_a authority_n among_o they_o and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o will_v as_o fast_o flee_v from_o this_o to_o the_o former_a again_o when_o this_o shall_v be_v prove_v in_o some_o place_n more_o false_a &_o absurd_a then_o the_o other_o 13_o but_o what_o matter_n be_v it_o how_o they_o read_v in_o their_o church_n or_o how_o they_o correct_v their_o former_a translation_n by_o the_o late_a when_o the_o old_a corruption_n remain_v still_o be_v set_v of_o purpose_n in_o the_o top_n of_o every_o door_n within_o their_o church_n in_o these_o word_n babe_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n 5._o 1_o io._n 5._o why_o remain_v that_o write_v so_o often_o and_o so_o conspicuous_o in_o the_o wall_n of_o their_o church_n which_o in_o their_o bibles_n they_o correct_v as_o a_o fault_n their_o late_a bible_n say_v keep_v yourselves_o from_o idol_n their_o church_n wall_n say_v keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n s._n john_n speak_v to_o the_o late_o convert_v gentile_n bid_v they_o beware_v of_o the_o idol_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v convert_v they_o speak_v to_o the_o old_a instruct_v christian_n bid_v they_o beware_v of_o the_o sacred_a image_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n of_o the_o holy_a crucifix_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o every_o such_o representation_n and_o monument_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o our_o redemption_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n where_o these_o holy_a monument_n be_v wont_a to_o stand_v in_o catholic_a time_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o rood_n loft_n and_o partition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o chancel_n there_o now_o stand_v these_o word_n as_o confront_v and_o condemn_v the_o foresay_a holy_a monument_n babe_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n which_o word_n whosoever_o esteem_v as_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v against_o christ_n image_n be_v make_v a_o very_a babe_n in_o deed_n and_o sottish_o abuse_v by_o their_o scribble_v door_n and_o false_a translation_n to_o count_v that_o idolatry_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n to_o no_o other_o purpose_n then_o to_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o he_o who_o image_n and_o picture_n it_o be_v 14_o but_o the_o gay_a confuter_n with_o who_o i_o begin_v say_v for_o further_a answer_n 35._o w._n fulke_o fo._n 35._o admit_v that_o in_o some_o of_o our_o translation_n it_o be_v child_n keep_v yourselves_o from_o image_n for_o so_o he_o will_v have_v say_v if_o it_o be_v true_o print_v what_o great_a crime_n of_o corruption_n be_v here_o commit_v and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v again_o this_o be_v the_o crime_n and_o fault_n thereof_o that_o they_o mean_v by_o so_o translate_n to_o make_v the_o simple_a believe_v that_o idol_n and_o image_n be_v all_o one_o which_o be_v absurd_a he_o repli_v that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o absurdity_n then_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o greek_a word_n to_o use_v a_o latin_a of_o the_o same_o signification_n and_o upon_o this_o position_n he_o grant_v that_o according_a to_o the_o property_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n a_o man_n may_v say_v 〈◊〉_d gen._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n make_v man_n according_a to_o his_o idol_n and_o that_o general_o idolum_fw-la may_n as_o true_o
london_n according_a to_o the_o original_a property_n of_o it_o likewise_o episcopus_fw-la a_o greek_a word_n in_o the_o original_a sense_n be_v every_o overseer_n as_o tully_n use_v it_o and_o other_o profane_a writer_n but_o among_o christian_n in_o ecclesiastical_a speech_n it_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o no_o man_n will_v say_v my_o lord_n overseer_n of_o london_n for_o my_o l._n bishop_n likewise_o we_o say_v seven_o deacon_n s._n steven_n a_o deacon_n no_o man_n will_v say_v seven_o minister_n s._n steven_n a_o minister_n although_o that_o be_v the_o original_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n deacon_n but_o by_o ecclesiastical_a use_n &_o appropriation_n be_v take_v for_o a_o certain_a degree_n of_o the_o clergy_n so_o it_o sound_v in_o every_o man_n ear_n and_o so_o it_o must_v be_v translate_v as_o we_o say_v nero_n make_v many_o martyr_n not_o nero_n make_v many_o witness_n and_o yet_o martyr_n by_o the_o first_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o witness_v we_o say_v baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n not_o wash_v be_v a_o sacrament_n yet_o baptism_n and_o wash_n by_o the_o first_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n be_v all_o one_o 2_o now_o then_o to_o come_v to_o our_o purpose_n such_o be_v the_o absurd_a translation_n of_o the_o english_a bibles_n and_o altogether_o like_a unto_o these_o namely_o when_o they_o translate_v congregation_n for_o church_n elder_a for_o priest_n image_n for_o idol_n dissension_n for_o schism_n general_n for_o catholic_a secret_a for_o sacrament_n overseer_n for_o bishop_n nu_fw-la bishop_n see_v chap._n 15._o nu_fw-la 18._o &_o 3.4_o &_o chap._n 21._o nu_fw-la messenger_n for_o angel_n ambassador_n for_o apostle_n minister_v for_o deacon_n and_o such_o like_a to_o what_o other_o end_n be_v these_o deceitful_a translation_n but_o to_o conceal_v &_o obscure_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o dignity_n thereof_o mention_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o dissemble_v the_o word_n schism_n as_o they_o do_v also_o *_o 1562._o gal._n 5._o tit._n 3._o 1_o cor._n 11._o bib._n 1562._o heresy_n and_o heretic_n for_o fear_v of_o disgrace_v their_o schism_n and_o heresy_n to_o say_v of_o matrimony_n neither_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o latin_a nor_o mystery_n which_o be_v the_o greek_a but_o to_o go_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v possible_o from_o the_o common_a usual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a word_n 32._o eph._n 5._o v._n 32._o say_v this_o be_v a_o great_a secret_a in_o favour_n of_o their_o heresy_n that_o matrimony_n be_v no_o sacrament_n 3_o s._n paul_n say_v as_o plain_a as_o he_o can_v speak_v 10_o 1_o cor._n 1._o v._n 10_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o all_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n among_o you_o they_o translate_v for_o schism_n dissension_n which_o may_v be_v in_o profane_a and_o worldly_a thing_n as_o well_o as_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o schism_n be_v those_o that_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o know_v themselves_o guilty_a s._n paul_n say_v as_o plain_o as_o be_v possible_a 5._o tit._n 3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gal._n 5._o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n avoid_v after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n they_o translate_v in_o their_o bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1562_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o author_n of_o sect_n and_o where_o the_o greek_a be_v heresy_n reckon_v among_o damnable_a sin_n they_o say_v sect_n favour_v that_o name_n for_o their_o own_o sake_n and_o dissemble_v it_o as_o though_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v not_o against_o heresy_n or_o heretic_n schism_n or_o schismatic_n 4_o as_o also_o they_o suppress_v the_o very_a name_n catholic_a when_o it_o be_v express_o in_o the_o greek_a for_o malice_n towards_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n because_o they_o know_v themselves_o never_o shall_v be_v call_v or_o know_v by_o that_o name_n 1577._o an._n 1562._o 1577._o and_o therefore_o their_o two_o english_a bibles_n accustom_v to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n therefore_o by_o like_o most_o authentical_a leave_v it_o clean_o out_o in_o the_o title_n of_o all_o those_o epistle_n 1579._o euseb_n li._n 2._o ec._n hist_o c._n 22_o in_o fine_a 1579._o which_o have_v be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholicae_fw-la epistolae_fw-la ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o their_o late_a english_z bible_n deal_v somewhat_o more_o honest_o have_v turn_v the_o word_n catholic_a into_o general_n say_v the_o general_a epistle_n of_o james_n of_o peter_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v in_o his_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o general_a church_n because_o he_o will_v not_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o lutheran_n catechism_n say_v for_o that_o purpose_n i_o believe_v the_o christian_a church_n dubitautio_n lind._o in_o dubitautio_n so_o that_o by_o this_o rule_n when_o s._n augustine_n tell_v that_o the_o manner_n be_v in_o city_n where_o there_o be_v liberty_n of_o religion_n to_o ask_v qua_fw-la itur_fw-la ad_fw-la catholicam_fw-la we_o must_v translate_v it_o which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o general_n and_o when_o s._n hierom_n say_v if_o we_o agree_v in_o faith_n with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n ergo_fw-la catholicisumus_fw-la we_o must_v traslate_v it_o then_o we_o be_v general_n be_v not_o this_o good_a stuff_n be_v they_o not_o ashamed_a thus_o to_o invert_v and_o pervert_v all_o word_n against_o common_a sense_n and_o use_v and_o reason_n catholic_a and_o general_n or_o universal_a we_o know_v be_v by_o the_o original_a property_n of_o the_o word_n all_o one_o but_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o both_o as_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v a_o catholic_a council_n for_o a_o general_a council_n so_o be_v it_o ridiculous_a and_o impious_a to_o say_v general_n for_o catholic_a in_o derogation_n thereof_o and_o for_o to_o hide_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n 5_o be_v it_o because_o they_o will_v follow_v the_o greek_a catholica_fw-la catholica_fw-la that_o they_o turn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d general_n even_o as_o just_a as_o when_o they_o turn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d image_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d instruction_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ordinance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dissension_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sect_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d secret_a and_o such_o like_a where_o they_o go_v as_o far_o from_o the_o greek_a as_o they_o can_v &_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o pretend_v for_o answer_n of_o their_o word_n sect_n that_o they_o follow_v our_o latin_a translation_n alas_o poor_a shift_n for_o they_o that_o otherwise_o pretend_v nothing_o but_o the_o greek_a to_o be_v try_v by_o that_o latin_a which_o themselves_o condemn_v but_o we_o honour_v the_o say_a text_n and_o translate_v it_o sect_n also_o as_o we_o there_o find_v it_o and_o as_o we_o do_v in_o other_o place_n follow_v the_o latin_a text_n and_o take_v not_o our_o advantage_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n because_o we_o know_v the_o latin_a translation_n be_v good_a also_o and_o sincere_a and_o approve_v in_o the_o church_n by_o long_a antiquity_n and_o it_o be_v in_o sense_n all_o one_o to_o we_o with_o the_o greek_a but_o not_o so_o to_o they_o who_o in_o these_o day_n of_o controversy_n about_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a text_n by_o not_o follow_a the_o greek_a which_o they_o profess_v sincere_o to_o follow_v bewray_fw-fr themselves_o that_o they_o do_v it_o for_o a_o malicious_a purpose_n chap._n v._o heretical_a translation_n against_o the_o church_n 1_o as_o they_o suppress_v the_o name_n catholic_a even_o so_o do_v they_o in_o their_o first_o english_a bible_n the_o name_n of_o church_n itself_o because_o at_o their_o first_o revolt_n &_o apostasy_n from_o that_o that_o be_v universal_o know_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a catholic_a church_n it_o be_v a_o great_a objection_n against_o their_o schismatical_a proceeding_n and_o it_o stick_v much_o in_o the_o people_n conscience_n that_o they_o forsake_v the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o whereupon_o very_o wile_o they_o suppress_v the_o name_n church_n in_o their_o english_a translation_n so_o 1562._o bib._n 1562._o that_o in_o all_o that_o bible_n so_o long_o read_v in_o their_o congregation_n we_o can_v not_o once_o find_v the_o name_n thereof_o ludge_v by_o these_o place_n which_o seem_v of_o most_o importance_n for_o the_o dignity_n preeminence_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o our_o saviour_n say_v 16._o mat._n 16._o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o they_o make_v he_o to_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o congregation_n again_o 18._o mat._n 18._o if_o he_o hear_v not_o they_o tell_v the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o
thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o as_o a_o publican_n they_o say_v congregation_n again_o who_o will_v think_v they_o will_v have_v alter_v the_o word_n church_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 5._o eph._n 5._o their_o english_a translation_n for_o many_o year_n read_v thus_o you_o husband_n love_v your_o wife_n as_o christ_n love_v the_o congregation_n and_o cleanse_v it_o to_o make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a congregation_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_v and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a secret_a but_o i_o speak_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o congregation_n and_o to_o timothee_n the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 3._o 1_o tim._n 3._o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n here_o be_v no_o word_n of_o church_n which_o in_o latin_a and_o greek_a be_v ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la columna_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la likewise_o to_o the_o ephesian_n again_o he_o have_v make_v he_o head_n of_o the_o congregation_n 1._o eph._n 1._o which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o to_o the_o hebrews_n they_o be_v all_o bold_a to_o translate_v 23_o heb._n 12._o v._o 23_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o firstborn_a where_o the_o apostle_n name_v heavenly_a jerusalem_n the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n etc._n etc._n 3_o so_o that_o by_o this_o translation_n there_o be_v no_o more_o church_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a but_o congregation_n and_o he_o be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o congregation_n and_o this_o congregation_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o make_n of_o this_o translation_n be_v in_o a_o few_o new_a brethren_n of_o england_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o name_n church_n be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o english_a bible_n to_o commend_v the_o name_n of_o congregation_n above_o the_o name_n of_o church_n whereas_o s._n augustine_n tell_v they_o 〈◊〉_d in_o ps_n 81_o in_o ioitio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o jew_n synagogue_n be_v a_o congregation_n the_o church_n a_o convocation_n and_o that_o a_o congregation_n be_v of_o beast_n also_o a_o convocation_n of_o reasonable_a creature_n only_o and_o that_o the_o jew_n congregation_n be_v sometime_o call_v the_o church_n but_o the_o apostle_n never_o call_v the_o church_n congregation_n do_v you_o see_v then_o what_o a_o goodly_a change_n they_o have_v make_v for_o church_n to_o say_v congregation_n so_o make_v themselves_o a_o very_a synagogue_n &_o that_o by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o yet_o as_o s._n augustine_n tell_v they_o most_o true_o signify_v rather_o a_o convocation_n 4_o if_o they_o appeal_v here_o to_o their_o late_a translation_n we_o must_v obtain_v of_o they_o to_o condemn_v the_o former_a and_o to_o confess_v this_o be_v a_o gross_a fault_n commit_v therein_o and_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o our_o contrie_n do_v not_o ill_a to_o forbid_v and_o burn_v such_o book_n which_o be_v so_o translate_v by_o tyndal_n and_o the_o like_a as_o be_v not_o in_o deed_n god_n book_n word_n or_o scripture_n but_o the_o devil_n word_n yea_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o leave_v out_o of_o this_o word_n church_n altogether_o be_v of_o a_o heretical_a spirit_n against_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n because_o than_o they_o have_v no_o caluinistical_a church_n in_o any_o like_a form_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n to_o they_o now_o neither_o will_v it_o serve_v they_o to_o say_v after_o their_o manner_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v translate_v ecclesiam_fw-la congregation_n this_o be_v no_o more_o absurdity_n then_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o greek_a word_n 35._o confut._n of_o m._n houlet_n so_o 35._o to_o use_v a_o latin_a of_o the_o same_o signification_n this_o we_o trow_v will_v not_o suffice_v they_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o simple_a indifferent_a reader_n 5_o but_o my_o master_n if_o you_o will_v confess_v the_o former_a fault_n and_o corruption_n never_o so_o plain_o be_v that_o enough_o to_o justify_v your_o corrupt_a deal_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v it_o not_o a_o horrible_a fault_n so_o wilful_o to_o falsify_v and_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v you_o abuse_v the_o people_n for_o certain_a year_n with_o false_a translation_n and_o afterward_o say_v lo_o we_o have_v amend_v it_o in_o our_o late_a translation_n 27._o see_v his_o new_a test_n in_o latin_a of_o the_o year_n 1556_o print_v by_o robert_n steven_n in_o fol._n act._n 2._o v._n 27._o then_o may_v the_o heretic_n beza_n be_v excuse_v for_o translate_n in_o steed_n of_o christ_n soul_n in_o hell_n his_o carcase_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o because_o some_o friend_n tell_v he_o of_o that_o corruption_n and_o he_o correct_v it_o in_o the_o late_a edition_n he_o shall_v nevertheless_o in_o your_o iudgemet_fw-la be_v count_v a_o right_a honest_a man_n no_o be_v you_o sure_o the_o discrete_a reader_n can_v not_o be_v so_o abuse_v but_o the_o will_v easy_o see_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o mend_v some_o oversighte_n which_o may_v escape_v the_o best_a man_n &_o in_o your_o gross_a false_a translation_n who_o at_o the_o first_o falsfie_v of_o a_o prepense_a malice_n and_o afterward_o alter_v it_o for_o very_a shame_n howbeit_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a place_n that_o concern_v the_o church_n perpetuity_n and_o stability_n you_o have_v not_o yet_o alter_v the_o former_a translation_n but_o it_o remain_v as_o before_o and_o be_v at_o this_o day_n read_v in_o your_o church_n thus_o upon_o this_o rock_n 1_o will_v build_v my_o congregation_n 1577._o mat._n 16._o v._n 18._o bib._n 1577._o can_v it_o be_v without_o some_o heretical_a subreltie_n that_o in_o this_o place_n special_o and_o i_o think_v only_o you_o change_v not_o the_o word_n congregation_n into_o church_n give_v we_o a_o reason_n &_o discharge_v your_o credit_n 6_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o beza_n who_o the_o english_a bible_n also_o follow_v translate_n active_o that_o greek_a word_n which_o in_o common_a use_n &_o by_o s._n chrysostoms_n and_o the_o greek_a doctor_n exposition_n be_v a_o plain_a passive_a to_o signify_v as_o in_o his_o annotation_n be_v clear_a that_o christ_n may_v be_v without_o his_o church_n that_o be_v a_o head_n without_o a_o body_n the_o word_n be_v these_o in_o the_o heretical_a translation_n 〈◊〉_d eph._n 1._o v._n 21.23_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o give_v he_o to_o be_v the_o head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o church_n be_v his_o body_n the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o s._n chrysostom_n say_v beza_n he_o may_v have_v say_v all_o the_o greek_a &_o latin_a ancient_a father_n take_v it_o passive_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o christ_n be_v fill_v all_o in_o all_o because_o all_o faithful_a man_n as_o member_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o body_n concur_v to_o the_o fullness_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o christ_n the_o head_n but_o this_o say_v he_o seem_v unto_o i_o a_o force_a interpretation_n why_o so_o beza_fw-mi 7_o mark_v his_o doctor_n who_o he_o oppose_v to_o the_o father_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_n because_o xenophon_n say_v he_o in_o such_o a_o place_n and_o plato_n in_o such_o a_o place_n use_v the_o say_v greek_a word_n active_o jomit_v this_o miserable_a match_n &_o unworthy_a name_n of_o xenophon_n &_o plato_n in_o trial_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n against_o all_o the_o glorious_a doctor_n this_o be_v his_o common_a custom_n i_o ask_v he_o rather_o of_o these_o his_o own_o doctor_n how_o they_o use_v the_o greek_a word_n in_o other_o place_n of_o their_o work_n how_o use_v they_o it_o most_o common_o yea_o how_o do_v all_o other_o greek_a writer_n either_o profane_a or_o sacred_a use_n it_o what_o say_v the_o greek_a reader_n of_o all_o university_n sure_o not_o only_o they_o but_o their_o scholar_n for_o the_o most_o part_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o use_n of_o this_o word_n and_o the_o like_a be_v passive_a though_o sometime_o it_o may_v also_o signify_v active_o but_o that_o be_v so_o rare_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o other_o that_o no_o man_n light_o will_v use_v it_o and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v it_o will_v be_v count_v a_o fault_n and_o some_o lack_n of_o skill_n if_o one_o now_o in_o his_o write_n that_o will_v express_v this_o in_o greek_a god_n fill_v all_o thing_n with_o his_o blessing_n shall_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o wine_n fill_v the_o cup_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ask_v they_o that_o have_v skill_n and_o control_n i_o contrariwise_o if_o one_o will_v say_v passive_o all_o thing_n be_v fill_v with_o god_n blessing_n the_o cup_n be_v fill_v with_o wine_n such_o a_o prophecy_n
be_v fulfil_v what_o mean_v grecian_a will_v not_o say_v as_o s._n chrysostom_n here_o expound_v this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d use_v it_o passive_o 8_o yet_o say_v beza_n this_o be_v a_o force_a interpretation_n because_o xenophon_n forsooth_o &_o plato_n once_o perhaps_o in_o all_o their_o whole_a work_n use_v it_o otherwise_o o_o heretical_a blindness_n or_o rather_o stubburnenes_n that_o call_v that_o force_a which_o be_v most_o common_a and_o usual_a and_o see_v not_o that_o his_o own_o translation_n be_v force_v because_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a use_n of_o the_o word_n but_o no_o marvel_v for_o he_o that_o in_o other_o place_n think_v it_o no_o force_a interpretation_n recipere_fw-la recipere_fw-la to_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v contain_v which_o neither_o xenophon_n nor_o plato_n nor_o any_o greek_a author_n will_v allow_v he_o to_o do_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d carcase_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d poenitentian_n animam_fw-la prescientian_n poenitentian_n povidence_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o that_o amend_v their_o life_n may_v much_o more_o in_o this_o place_n dissemble_v his_o force_a interpretation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o why_o he_o shall_v call_v s._n chrysostoms_n interpretation_n force_v which_o be_v the_o common_a &_o usual_a interpretation_n that_o have_v no_o more_o reason_n then_o if_o a_o very_a thief_n shall_v say_v to_o a_o honest_a man_n thou_o be_v a_o thief_n and_o not_o i._o 9_o be_v it_o force_v beza_n that_o christ_n be_v fill_v all_o in_o all_o by_o the_o church_n do_v not_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n before_o call_v the_o church_n the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n say_v 1._o eph._n 1._o which_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o be_v fill_v all_o in_o all_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o he_o then_o be_v he_o fill_v or_o have_v his_o fullness_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o maim_a head_n without_o a_o body_n this_o will_v s._n paul_n say_v if_o you_o will_v give_v he_o leave_v and_o this_o he_o do_v say_v whether_o you_o will_v or_o no._n but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o apostle_n to_o say_v so_o because_o say_v beza_n christ_n need_v no_o such_o complement_n and_o if_o he_o need_v it_o not_o then_o may_v he_o be_v without_o a_o church_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n if_o the_o church_n have_v be_v for_o many_o year_n not_o only_o invisible_a but_o also_o not_o at_o all_o will_v a_o man_n easy_o at_o the_o first_o imagine_v or_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v such_o secret_a poison_n in_o their_o translation_n 10_o again_o it_o come_v from_o the_o same_o puddle_n of_o geneva_n 1579._o bib._n 1579._o that_o in_o their_o bible_n so_o call_v the_o english_a bezites_n translate_v against_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o whereas_o themselves_o be_v full_a of_o sect_n and_o dissension_n and_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v by_o unity_n and_o have_v this_o mark_n give_v she_o by_o christ_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d cant._n 6._o v._n 8._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o who_o person_n solomon_n speak_v say_v vnaest_n columba_fw-la mea_fw-la that_o be_v one_o be_v my_o dove_n or_o my_o dove_n be_v one_o therefore_o in_o steed_n hereof_o the_o foresay_a bible_n say_v my_o dove_n be_v alone_o neither_o hebrew_n not_o greek_a word_n have_v that_o signification_n but_o be_v as_o proper_a to_o signify_v one_o as_o vnus_fw-la in_o latin_a 11_o but_o we_o beseech_v every_o indifferent_a reader_n even_o for_o his_o soul_n health_n to_o consider_v that_o one_o point_n special_o before_o mention_v of_o their_o abandon_v the_o name_n of_o church_n for_o so_o many_o year_n out_o of_o their_o english_a bibles_n thereby_o to_o defeat_v the_o strong_a argument_n that_o may_v and_o may_v possible_o be_v bring_v against_o they_o and_o all_o other_o heretic_n to_o wit_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v so_o many_o way_n and_o so_o great_o recommend_v unto_o all_o christian_n in_o holy_a scripture_n consider_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o a_o malicious_a intention_n they_o have_v herein_o first_o that_o the_o name_n church_n shall_v never_o find_v in_o the_o common_a people_n ear_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n second_o that_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n so_o in_o this_o also_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o the_o ignorant_a a_o good_a argument_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o say_v we_o sinde_v not_o this_o word_n church_n in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o as_o in_o other_o article_n they_o say_v so_o because_o they_o find_v not_o the_o express_a word_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o do_v they_o well_o provide_v that_o the_o word_n church_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v not_o stay_v or_o hinder_v their_o schismatical_a and_o heretical_a proceeding_n as_o long_o as_o that_o be_v the_o only_a english_a translation_n that_o be_v read_v and_o like_v among_o the_o people_n that_o be_v so_o long_o till_o they_o have_v by_o preach_v take_v away_o the_o catholic_a church_n credit_n and_o authority_n altogether_o among_o the_o ignorant_a by_o oppose_v the_o scripture_n thereunto_o which_o themselves_o have_v thus_o false_o translate_v chap._n vi_o heretical_a translation_n against_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n 1_o but_o because_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v stand_v here_o upon_o their_o late_a translation_n which_o have_v the_o name_n church_n because_o by_o that_o time_n they_o see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o change_v the_o name_n &_o now_o their_o number_n be_v increase_v &_o themselves_o begin_v to_o challenge_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o not_o the_o catholic_a and_o for_o former_a time_n when_o they_o be_v not_o they_o devise_v a_o invisible_a church_n if_o then_o they_o will_v stand_v upon_o their_o late_a translation_n and_o refuse_v to_o justify_v the_o former_a let_v we_o demand_v of_o they_o concern_v all_o their_o english_a translation_n why_o and_o to_o what_o end_n they_o suppress_v the_o name_n priest_n translate_n it_o elder_a in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v signify_v by_o presbyter_n and_o presbyterium_fw-la the_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 2_o understand_v gentle_a reader_n their_o wily_a policy_n therein_o be_v this_o to_o take_v away_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n they_o take_v away_o both_o altar_n and_o priest_n because_o they_o know_v right_a well_o that_o these_o three_o priest_z sacrifice_n and_o altar_n be_v dependent_n and_o consequent_n one_o of_o a_o other_o so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v if_o there_o be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n there_o must_v be_v a_o external_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v it_o a_o altar_n to_o offer_v the_o same_o upon_o so_o have_v the_o gentile_n their_o sacrifice_n priest_n and_o altar_n so_o have_v the_o jew_n so_o christ_n himself_o be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n have_v a_o sacrifice_n his_o body_n and_o a_o altar_n his_o cross_n upon_o the_o which_o he_o offer_v it_o and_o because_o he_o institute_v this_o sacrifice_n to_o continue_v in_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o in_o commemoration_n and_o representation_n of_o his_o death_n therefore_o do_v he_o withal_o ordain_v his_o apostle_n priest_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n there_o &_o then_o institute_v the_o holy_a order_n of_o priesthood_n and_o priest_n say_v hocfacite_n do_v this_o 19_o luc._n c._n 22._o v._n 19_o to_o offer_v the_o self_n same_o sacrifice_n in_o a_o mystical_a and_o unblouddy_a manner_n until_o the_o world_n end_n 3_o to_o defeat_v all_o this_o and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o external_a priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n they_o by_o corrupt_a translation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v they_o clean_o dumb_a as_o though_o they_o have_v not_o a_o word_n of_o any_o such_o priest_n or_o priesthood_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o their_o bibles_n we_o grant_v have_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n very_o often_o but_o that_o be_v when_o mention_n be_v make_v either_o of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o gentile_n special_o when_o they_o be_v reprehend_v and_o blame_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o such_o place_n our_o adversary_n have_v the_o name_n priest_n in_o there_o translation_n to_o make_v the_o very_a name_n of_o priest_n odious_a among_o the_o common_a ignorant_a people_n again_o they_o have_v also_o the_o name_n priest_n when_o they_o be_v take_v for_o all_o manner_n of_o man_n woman_n or_o child_n that_o offer_v internal_a and_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n whereby_o our_o adversary_n will_v false_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o priest_n 199._o whitaker_n p._n 199._o as_o one_o of_o they_o of_o late_o fresh_o avouch_v direct_o against_o s._n
flock_n &_o cure_v of_o soul_n as_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n they_o make_v s._n paul_n speak_v thus_o to_o timothee_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n so_o they_o have_v rather_o say_v than_o grace_n 1579.1577_o bib._n 1579.1577_o lest_o holy_a order_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n give_v thou_o with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o eldership_n or_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o eldership_n 1_o tim._n 4._o presbyterij_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d presbyterij_fw-la what_o be_v this_o company_n of_o eldership_n somewhat_o they_o will_v say_v like_a to_o the_o apostle_n word_n but_o they_o will_v not_o speak_v plain_o lest_o the_o world_n may_v hear_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o timothee_n be_v make_v priest_n or_o bishop_n even_o as_o the_o use_n be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n subscribe_v ca._n 3_o in_o the_o year_n 436._o where_o s._n augustine_n be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v let_v the_o 4_o council_n of_o carthage_n speak_v for_o both_o part_n indifferent_o and_o tell_v we_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n a_o priest_n when_o he_o take_v his_o order_n the_o bishop_n blessing_n he_o and_o hold_v his_o hand_n upon_o his_o head_n let_v all_o the_o priest_n also_o that_o be_v present_a hold_v their_o hand_n by_o the_o bishop_n hand_n upon_o his_o head_n so_o do_v our_o priest_n at_o this_o day_n when_o a_o bishop_n make_v priest_n &_o this_o be_v the_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o company_n of_o priest_n which_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o and_o which_o they_o translate_v the_o company_n of_o the_o eldership_n only_o their_o former_a translation_n of_o 1562_o in_o this_o place_n by_o what_o chance_n or_o consideration_n we_o know_v not_o let_v fall_v out_o of_o the_o pen_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o priesthood_n 9_o otherwise_o in_o all_o their_o english_a bibles_n all_o the_o bell_n ring_v one_o note_v as_o the_o elder_n that_o rule_v well_o be_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n and_o against_o a_o elder_a receive_v no_o accusation_n but_o under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n sacerdotio_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lib._n 3._o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la 1_o tim._n 5._o and_o if_o any_o be_v disease_v among_o you_o let_v he_o call_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o and_o anoint_v he_o with_o oil_n etc._n etc._n jacob_n 5._o whereas_o s._n chrisostom_n out_o of_o this_o place_n prove_v the_o high_a dignity_n of_o priest_n in_o remit_v sin_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v of_o priesthood_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unless_o they_o will_v translate_v that_o title_n also_o of_o eldership_n again_o they_o make_v s._n peter_n say_v thus_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o exhort_v which_o be_o also_o a_o elder_a feed_v you_o christ_n flock_n as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o etc._n etc._n 1_o pet._n 5._o elder_a s._n hierom_n read_v presbyteros_fw-la ego_fw-la compresbyter_n ep._n 85._o ad_fw-la euagr._fw-la &_o in_o 1_o ad_fw-la gal_n prove_v the_o dignity_n of_o priest_n and_o yet_o in_o 4_o gal._n he_o read_v according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n seniores_fw-la in_o vobis_fw-la rogo_fw-la consenior_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o senior_n here_o &_o in_o the_o act_n be_v a_o priest_n &_o not_o contrary_a presbyter_n a_o elder_a 10_o where_o if_o they_o will_v tell_v we_o as_o also_o in_o certain_a other_o place_n that_o our_o latin_a translation_n have_v seniores_fw-la and_o maiores_fw-la natu_fw-la we_o tell_v they_o as_o heretofore_o we_o have_v tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o they_o who_o profess_v to_o translate_v the_o greek_a again_o we_o say_v that_o if_o they_o mean_v no_o worse_o than_o the_o old_a latin_a translator_n do_v they_o will_v be_v as_o indifferent_a as_o he_o to_o have_v say_v sometime_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n when_o he_o have_v the_o word_n presbyteros_fw-la and_z presbyterium_fw-la as_o we_o be_v indifferent_a in_o our_o translation_n say_v senior_n and_o ancient_n when_o we_o find_v it_o so_o in_o our_o latin_n be_v well_o assure_v that_o by_o sundry_a word_n he_o mean_v but_o one_o thing_n as_o in_o greek_a it_o be_v but_o one_o and_o as_o both_o erasmus_n and_o also_o beza_n himself_o always_o translate_v it_o keep_v the_o name_n presbyter_n and_o presbyteri_fw-la of_o whon_n by_o reason_n they_o shall_v have_v learn_v rather_o than_o of_o our_o latin_a translator_n who_o otherwise_o they_o condemn_v and_o if_o they_o say_v they_o do_v follow_v they_o and_o not_o he_o because_o they_o translate_v not_o senior_n and_o maior_fw-la natu_fw-la but_o the_o word_n presbyter_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o elder_a in_o all_o place_n we_o tell_v they_o and_o herein_o we_o convent_n their_o conscience_n that_o they_o do_v it_o to_o take_v away_o the_o external_a priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o to_o suppress_v the_o name_n priest_n against_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o as_o now_o since_o christ_n very_o proper_a and_o usual_a signification_n thereof_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n counsel_n &_o father_n in_o all_o common_a writing_n and_o speak_v special_o the_o latin_a presbyter_n which_o grew_n to_o this_o signification_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a in_o the_o foresay_a place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 11_o in_o so_o much_o that_o immediate_o in_o the_o first_o canon_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n nothing_o be_v more_o common_a than_o this_o distinction_n of_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n and_o name_n si_fw-la episcopus_fw-la vel_fw-la presbyter_n 4._o see_v can_v apost_n conc._n 1_o nic._n epistol_n ignat._n conc._n carth._n 4._o vel_fw-la diaconus_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n or_o deacon_n do_v this_o or_o that_o which_o if_o the_o protestant_n or_o caluinist_n will_v translate_v after_o their_o manner_n thus_o if_o a_o bishop_n or_o elder_a or_o deacon_n &c_n &c_n 5._o beza_n in_o 1_o pet._n 5._o they_o do_v against_o themselves_o which_o make_v presbyter_n or_o elder_a a_o common_a name_n to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n &_o not_o a_o peculiar_a degree_n next_o unto_o a_o bishop_n so_o that_o either_o they_o must_v condemn_v all_o antiquity_n for_o place_v presbyter_n in_o the_o second_o degree_n after_o a_o bishop_n or_o they_o must_v translate_v it_o priest_n as_o we_o do_v or_o they_o must_v make_v elder_a to_o be_v their_o second_o degree_n and_o so_o put_v minister_n out_o of_o place_n 12_o and_o here_o we_o must_v ask_v they_o how_o this_o name_n minister_n come_v to_o be_v a_o degree_n distinct_a from_o deacon_n diaconus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diaconus_fw-la whereas_o by_o their_o own_o rule_n of_o translation_n deacon_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o minister_n and_o why_o keep_v they_o the_o old_a &_o usual_a ecclesiastical_a name_n of_o deacon_n in_o translate_n diaconus_fw-la 1577.1579_o 1_o tim._n 3._o bib._n 1577.1579_o and_o not_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n in_o translate_n presbyter_n do_v not_o priest_n come_v of_o presbyter_n as_o certain_o and_o as_o agreable_o as_o deacon_n of_o diaconus_fw-la prete_n prebstre_fw-fr prete_n do_v not_o also_o the_o french_a and_o italian_a word_n for_o priest_n come_v direct_o from_o the_o same_o will_v you_o always_o follow_v fancy_n and_o not_o reason_n do_v what_o you_o listen_v translate_v as_o you_o listen_v and_o not_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v and_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o you_o boast_v and_o vaunt_v so_o much_o of_o because_o yourselves_o have_v they_o who_o you_o call_v bishop_n the_o name_n bishop_n be_v in_o your_o english_a bibles_n which_o otherwise_o by_o your_o own_o rule_n of_o translation_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o overseer_n or_o superintendent_n likewise_o deacon_n you_o be_v content_a to_o use_v as_o a_o ecclesiastical_a word_n so_o use_v in_o antiquity_n because_o you_o also_o have_v those_o who_o you_o call_v deacon_n only_a priest_n must_v be_v turn_v contemptuous_o out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o elder_n put_v in_o their_o place_n because_o you_o have_v no_o priest_n not_o will_v none_o of_o they_o and_o because_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o us._n &_o as_o for_o elder_n you_o have_v none_o permit_v in_o england_n for_o fear_n of_o overthrow_v your_o bishop_n office_n &_o the_o queen_n supreme_a government_n in_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n &_o cause_n be_v not_o this_o to_o follow_v the_o humour_n of_o your_o heresy_n by_o machiavels_n politic_a rule_n without_o any_o fear_n of_o god_n 13_o apostle_n you_o say_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o your_o translation_n not_o always_o as_o we_o do_v and_o prophet_n and_o evangelist_n &_o angel_n and_o such_o like_a and_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o controversy_n between_o you_o and_o we_o there_o you_o can_v plead_v
very_o grave_o for_o keep_v the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a word_n 2_o beza_n in_o c._n 9_o mat._n nu_fw-la 25._o etc._n etc._n 10._o nu_fw-la 2_o as_o your_o master_n beza_n for_o example_n beside_o many_o other_o place_n where_o he_o bitter_o rebuke_v his_o fellow_n castaleons_n translation_n in_o one_o place_n write_v thus_o 11._o in_o 3_o ca._n mat._n nu_fw-la 11._o i_o can_v in_o this_o place_n dissemble_v the_o boldness_n of_o certain_a man_n which_o will_v god_n it_o rest_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o word_n only_o these_o man_n therefore_o concern_v the_o word_n baptise_v baptizo_fw-la baptizo_fw-la though_o use_v of_o sacred_a writer_n in_o the_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o for_o so_o many_o year_n after_o by_o the_o secret_a consent_n of_o all_o church_n consecrate_v to_o this_o one_o sacrament_n baptism_n baptism_n so_o that_o it_o be_v now_o grow_v into_o the_o vulgar_a speech_n almost_o of_o all_o nation_n yet_o they_o dare_v presume_v rash_o to_o change_v it_o and_o in_o place_n thereof_o to_o use_v the_o word_n wash_v delicate_a man_n forsooth_o which_o neither_o be_v move_v with_o the_o perpetual_a authority_n of_o so_o many_o age_n nor_o by_o the_o daily_a custom_n of_o the_o vulgar_a speech_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o think_v that_o lawful_a for_o divine_n which_o all_o man_n grant_v to_o other_o master_n and_o professor_n of_o art_n that_o be_v to_o retain_v and_o hold_v that_o as_o their_o own_o which_o by_o long_a use_n and_o in_o good_a faith_n they_o have_v true_o possess_v neither_o may_v they_o pretend_v the_o authority_n of_o some_o ancient_a writer_n as_o that_o cyprian_a say_v tingentes_fw-la for_o baptizantes_fw-la and_o tertullian_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n call_v seqvestrem_fw-la for_o mediatorem_fw-la for_o that_o which_o be_v to_o those_o ancient_n as_o it_o be_v new_a to_o we_o be_v old_a and_o even_o then_o that_o the_o self_n same_o word_n which_o we_o now_o use_v be_v familiar_a to_o the_o church_n mediator_n baptizo_fw-la mediator_n it_o be_v evident_a because_o it_o be_v very_o seldom_o that_o they_o speak_v otherwise_o but_o these_o man_n by_o this_o novelty_n seek_v after_o vain_a glory_n etc._n etc._n 14_o he_o speak_v against_o castaleon_n who_o in_o his_o new_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n change_v all_o ecclesiastical_a word_n into_o profane_a and_o heathenish_a as_o angelos_n in_o to_o genio_n prophetas_fw-la into_o fatidicos_fw-la templum_fw-la into_o fanum_fw-la and_o so_o forth_o but_o that_o which_o he_o do_v for_o foolish_a affectation_n of_o fineness_n and_o stile_n do_v not_o our_o english_a caluinist_n the_o very_a same_o when_o they_o listen_v for_o further_a their_o heresy_n when_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v idol_n according_a as_o christian_n have_v always_o understand_v it_o for_o false_a god_n they_o come_v and_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o homer_n &_o the_o lexicon_n 10.35_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d confut._n of_o the_o reas_n 10.35_o that_o it_o may_v signify_v a_o image_n &_o therefore_o so_o they_o translate_v it_o do_v they_o not_o the_o like_a in_o the_o greek_a word_n that_o by_o ecclesiastical_a use_n signify_v penance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o do_v penance_n when_o they_o argue_v out_o of_o plutarche_n and_o by_o the_o profane_a sense_n thereof_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o change_v of_o the_o mind_n or_o amendment_n of_o life_n whereas_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n poenitentes_fw-la that_o be_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o course_n of_o penance_n and_o exclude_v from_o the_o church_n as_o catechumeni_fw-la and_o energumeni_fw-la till_o they_o have_v accomplish_v their_o penance_n the_o very_a same_o be_v call_v in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 5._o diony_n ec._n hier._n c._n 5._o 15_o they_o therefore_o leave_v this_o ecclesiastical_a signification_n &_o translate_n it_o accord_a to_o plutarche_n do_v they_o not_o much_o like_a to_o castaleo_n do_v they_o not_o the_o same_o against_o the_o famous_a and_o ancient_a distinction_n of_o latrîa_fw-la and_o dulîa_fw-la 10._o latrîa_fw-la dulîa_fw-la beza_n in_o ●_o mat._n nu_fw-la 10._o when_o they_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o eustathius_n upon_o homer_n and_o aristophanes_n the_o grammarian_n that_o these_o two_o be_v all_o one_o whereas_o we_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n in_o many_o place_n the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a venerable_a bede_n &_o the_o long_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o scripture_n almost_o always_o use_v for_o the_o service_n and_o honour_v proper_a to_o god_n august_n de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c_o 1._o that_o according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a sense_n and_o use_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n they_o differ_v very_o much_o do_v they_o not_o the_o like_a in_o mysterium_fw-la and_o sacramentum_fw-la which_o they_o translate_v a_o secret_a in_o the_o profane_a sense_n whereas_o they_o know_v how_o these_o word_n be_v otherwise_o take_v both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v they_o not_o the_o like_a in_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la 1562._o bib._n a_o 1562._o when_o they_o translate_v it_o nothing_o else_o but_o congregation_n do_v they_o not_o the_o like_a in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o they_o translate_v ordain_v by_o election_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o profane_a court_n of_o athens_n whereas_o s._n hierom_n tell_v they_o that_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n take_v it_o for_o give_v holy_a order_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v they_o not_o the_o like_a in_o many_o other_o word_n wheresoever_o it_o serve_v their_o heretical_a purpose_n and_o as_o for_o profane_a translation_n be_v there_o any_o more_o profane_a than_o beza_n himself_o that_o so_o often_o in_o his_o annotation_n reprehend_v the_o old_a translation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o tully_n and_o terence_n homer_n and_o aristophanes_n &_o the_o like_a profane_a author_n yea_o so_o fond_o and_o childish_o that_o for_o olfactum_fw-la which_o erasmus_n use_v as_o pliny_n word_n he_o will_v needs_o say_v odoratum_fw-la because_o it_o be_v tully_n word_n 16_o but_o to_o return_n to_o our_o english_a translatour_n do_v not_o they_o the_o like_a to_o profane_a castaleo_n and_o do_v they_o not_o the_o very_a same_o that_o beza_n their_o master_n so_o large_o reprehend_v when_o they_o translate_v presbyterum_fw-la a_o elder_a be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o fault_n to_o translate_v so_o and_o to_o translate_v as_o castaleo_n do_v baptismum_fw-la wash_v have_v not_o presbyter_n be_v a_o peculiar_a and_o usual_a word_n for_o a_o priest_n as_o long_o as_o baptismus_fw-la for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n which_o castaleo_n alter_v into_o a_o common_a &_o profane_a word_n be_v worthy_o reprehend_v we_o will_v prove_v it_o have_v not_o for_o their_o sake_n who_o know_v it_o well_o enough_o but_o for_o the_o reader_n sake_n who_o they_o abuse_v as_o if_o they_o know_v it_o not_o 17_o in_o the_o first_o &_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o read_v thus_o elder_a that_o presbyter_n have_v signify_v a_o priest_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n not_o a_o elder_a episcopus_fw-la a_o duobus_fw-la aut_fw-la tribus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la presbyter_n ab_fw-la uno_fw-la episcopo_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la &_o diaconus_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la clerici_fw-la that_o be_v let_v a_o bishop_n be_v consecrate_v or_o ordain_v by_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n let_v a_o priest_n be_v make_v by_o one_o bishop_n see_v in_o the_o 4_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o diverse_a manner_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n deacon_n 2.3.4_o can._n 2.3.4_o etc._n etc._n where_o s._n augustine_n be_v present_a &_o subscribe_v again_o 32._o can._n apost_n 32._o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la presbyter_n contemnens_fw-la episcopum_fw-la suum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o priest_n contemn_v his_o bishop_n make_v a_o several_a congregation_n and_o erect_v another_o altar_n that_o be_v make_v a_o schism_n or_o heresy_n let_v he_o be_v depose_v so_o do_v arius_n be_v a_o priest_n against_o his_o bishop_n alexander_n again_o priest_n and_o deacon_n 40._o can._n 40._o let_v they_o attempt_v to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v 3._o can._n 3._o the_o holy_a synod_n by_o all_o mean_n forbid_v that_o neither_o bishop_n nor_o priest_n nor_o deacon_n etc._n etc._n have_v with_o they_o any_o foreign_a woman_n but_o the_o mother_n or_o sister_n etc._n etc._n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o suspicion_n again_o it_o be_v tell_v the_o holy_a council_n 14._o can._n 14._o that_o in_o certain_a place_n and_o city_n deacon_n give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o priest_n this_o neither_o rule_n nor_o custom_n have_v deliver_v that_o they_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n shall_v give_v to_o they_o that_o offer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o 3_o council_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o s._n augustine_n be_v and_o
ghostly_a father_n as_o before_o and_o especial_o s._n chrysostom_n will_v make_v they_o understand_v what_o these_o presbyteri_fw-la be_v and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v call_v in_o english_a who_o tell_v they_o in_o their_o own_o word_n that_o sacerdotes_fw-la the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a la_o have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o know_v sacerd_v li._n 3._o de_fw-fr sacerd_v but_o to_o purge_v the_o filth_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o whosoever_o despise_v they_o be_v more_o worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v then_o the_o rebel_n dathan_n and_o his_o complice_n 27_o now_o then_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n see_v we_o have_v such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v even_o from_o christ_n time_n 12._o hebr._n 12._o that_o testify_v not_o only_o for_o the_o name_n but_o for_o the_o very_a principal_a function_n of_o external_a priesthood_n in_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o remit_v sin_n and_o so_o forth_o what_o a_o peevish_a malicious_a &_o impudent_a corruption_n be_v this_o for_o the_o deface_a of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n tend_v there_o unto_o to_o seek_v to_o scrarch_n advantage_n of_o the_o word_n presbyter_n &_o to_o make_v it_o signify_v a_o elder_a not_o a_o priest_n presbyterium_fw-la eldership_n rather_o than_o priesthood_n as_o if_o other_o new-fangled_a companion_n that_o will_v forge_v a_o heresy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o apostle_n shall_v for_o that_o purpose_n translate_v it_o always_o legate_n or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o angel_n and_o shall_v translate_v it_o always_o messenger_n &_o that_o baptism_n be_v but_o a_o judaical_a ceremony_n and_o shall_v translate_v it_o wash_v which_o castalio_n do_v much_o more_o to_o lerable_o in_o his_o translation_n then_o any_o of_o these_o shall_v if_o he_o do_v it_o only_o of_o curiosity_n and_o folly_n and_o if_o to_o take_v away_o all_o distinction_n of_o clergy_n &_o laity_n the_o protestant_n shall_v always_o translate_v clerum_fw-la clerics_n clerics_n lot_n or_o lottery_n as_o they_o do_v translate_v it_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n parish_n and_o heritage_n may_v not_o 5._o not_o in_o 1_o pet_n ●_o see_v s._n hierom_n ad_fw-la nepot_n de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr clericorum_fw-la ep_n 2._o c._n 5._o beza_n himself_o control_v they_o sa_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n transfer_v the_o name_n clerus_fw-la to_o the_o college_n of_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n 28_o but_o alas_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o corruption_n &_o heresy_n concern_v priest_n have_v it_o not_o wrought_v within_o these_o few_o year_n such_o contempt_n of_o all_o priest_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o odious_a in_o our_o country_n then_o that_o name_n which_o before_o be_v so_o honourable_a and_o venerable_a and_o now_o be_v among_o all_o good_a man_n if_o ministry_n or_o eldership_n be_v grow_v to_o estimation_n in_o steed_n thereof_o somewhat_o they_o have_v to_o say_v but_o that_o be_v yet_o more_o contemprible_a and_o especial_o elder_n and_o eldership_n for_o the_o queen_n majesty_n &_o her_o counsellor_n will_v permit_v none_o in_o government_n of_o any_o church_n in_o england_n and_o so_o they_o have_v bring_v all_o to_o nothing_o else_o but_o profane_a laity_n and_o no_o marvel_v of_o these_o horrible_a inconvenience_n for_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n &_o priesthood_n go_v together_o and_o therefore_o be_v both_o honourable_a together_o so_o when_o they_o have_v according_a to_o daniel_n prophecy_n abolis_fw-la head_n the_o daily_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n what_o remain_v but_o the_o contempt_n of_o priest_n and_o clergy_n and_o their_o office_n so_o far_o forth_o that_o for_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n sake_n priest_n be_v call_v in_o great_a despite_n massing_n priest_n of_o they_o that_o little_o consider_v or_o less_o care_n what_o notable_a holy_a learned_a father_n of_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n time_n this_o their_o reproach_n touch_v and_o concern_v as_o by_o the_o testimony_n before_o allege_v be_v manifest_a and_o whereof_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v a_o peculiar_a chapter_n in_o the_o late_a apology_n of_o the_o english_a seminary_n 6._o chap._n 6._o chap._n vii_o heretical_a translation_n against_o purgatoris_fw-la limbus_fw-la patrum_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n 1_o have_v now_o discover_v their_o corrupt_a translation_n for_o deface_v of_o the_o church_n name_n and_o abolish_n of_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n let_v we_o come_v to_o another_o point_n of_o very_o great_a importance_n also_o and_o which_o by_o the_o wont_a consequence_n or_o sequel_n of_o error_n include_v in_o it_o many_o erroneous_a branch_n their_o principal_a malice_n then_o be_v bend_v against_o purgatory_n that_o be_v against_o a_o place_n where_o christian_a soul_n be_v purge_v by_o suffer_v of_o temporal_a pain_n after_o this_o life_n for_o sure_a maintenance_n of_o their_o erroneous_a denial_n hereof_o they_o take_v away_o and_o deny_v all_o three_o place_n say_v that_o there_o be_v never_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n any_o other_o place_n for_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n but_o only_o two_o to_o wit_n heaven_n for_o the_o bless_a &_o hell_n for_o the_o damn_a and_o so_o it_o follow_v by_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n that_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n and_o other_o good_a holy_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n go_v not_o after_o their_o death_n to_o the_o place_n call_v abraham_n bosom_n or_o limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la but_o immediate_o to_o heaven_n and_o so_o again_o by_o their_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v suffer_v death_n for_o their_o redemption_n and_o also_o by_o their_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o follow_v that_o our_o saviout_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o first_o man_n that_o ascend_v and_o enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o moreover_o by_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n it_o follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v not_o into_o any_o such_o three_o place_n to_o deliver_v the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o their_o prison_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o triumphant_o with_o he_o into_o heaven_n because_o by_o their_o erroneous_a doctrine_n they_o be_v never_o there_o &_o so_o that_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n concern_v our_o saviour_n christ_n his_o descend_v into_o hell_n must_v either_o be_v put_v out_o by_o the_o caluinist_n as_o beza_n do_v in_o his_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n print_v a_o 1564_o or_o it_o have_v some_o other_o meaning_n to_o wit_n either_o the_o lie_v of_o his_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n or_o as_o caluine_n and_o the_o pure_a caluinist_n his_o scholar_n will_v have_v it_o the_o suffering_n of_o hell_n pain_n and_o distress_n upon_o the_o cross_n catechism_n caluins_n institution_n li._n 2._o c._n 16._o sect._n 10._o &_o in_o his_o catechism_n loe_o the_o consequence_n and_o coherence_n of_o these_o error_n and_o heresy_n 2_o these_o now_o be_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n which_o they_o mean_v to_o avouch_v and_o defend_v whatsoever_o come_v of_o it_o first_o they_o be_v at_o a_o point_n not_o to_o care_v a_o rush_n for_o all_o the_o ancient_a holy_a doctor_n 19_o beza_n in_o 1_o pet._n 3_o 19_o that_o write_v with_o full_a consent_n to_o the_o contrary_n as_o themselves_o confess_v 9_o caluin_n institut_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 16._o sect._n 9_o call_v it_o their_o common_a error_n second_o they_o translate_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o favour_n thereof_o most_o corrupt_o &_o wilful_o as_o in_o bezaes_n false_a translation_n who_o be_v caluins_n successor_n in_o geneva_n it_o be_v notorious_a for_o he_o in_o his_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o year_n 1556._o print_v by_o robertus_fw-la stephanus_n in_o folio_n with_o annotation_n make_v our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v thus_o to_o his_o father_n non_fw-la derelinques_fw-la cadaver_fw-la meum_fw-la in_o sepulchro_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o carcase_n in_o the_o grave_n act._n 2._o for_o that_o which_o the_o hebrew_n &_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a hebraeo_fw-la hiero._n in_o ps_n verso_fw-it ex_fw-la hebraeo_fw-la and_o s._n hierom_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v non_fw-la derelinques_fw-la animam_fw-la meam_fw-la in_o inferno_fw-la as_o plain_o as_o we_o say_v in_o english_a thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n thus_o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v it_o in_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ps_n 15._o thus_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la utter_v it_o in_o greek_a thus_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n allege_v it_o thus_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n s._n luke_n in_o the_o act._n of_o the_o apostle_n cap._n 2._o record_v it_o and_o for_o this_o s._n augustine_n call_v he_o a_o infidel_n that_o deni_v it_o yet_o all_o this_o will_v not_o suffice_v to_o make_v beza_n translate_v it_o so_o because_o of_o certain_a error_n act._n error_n see_v his_o annot_n in_o 2._o act._n as_o he_o heretical_o term_v they_o which_o he_o
will_v full_o glad_o avoid_v hereby_o namely_o the_o catholic_a true_a doctrine_n of_o limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o purgatory_n what_o need_v we_o say_v more_o he_o translate_v animam_fw-la a_o carcase_n so_o call_v our_o saviour_n christ_n body_n irreverent_o &_o wicked_o he_o translate_v infernum_fw-la grave_n 3_o need_n we_o take_v any_o great_a labour_n to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v a_o foul_a corruption_n or_o that_o it_o be_v do_v purposely_o when_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o thus_o translate_v because_o else_o it_o will_v serve_v the_o papist_n which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o it_o be_v true_o and_o sincere_o translate_v make_v in_o deed_n for_o they_o for_o the_o first_o part_n we_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o it_o partly_o because_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o most_o absurd_a and_o they_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o partly_o because_o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o confute_v beza_n that_o two_o other_o as_o famous_a heretic_n as_o he_o castalio_n &_o flaccus_n illyricus_n write_v against_o he_o in_o this_o point_n and_o confute_v he_o partly_o also_o because_o we_o speak_v not_o here_o universal_o of_o all_o heretical_a translation_n but_o of_o the_o english_a corruption_n special_o &_o therefore_o we_o may_v only_o note_v here_o how_o glad_o they_o also_o will_v say_v somewhat_o else_o for_o soul_n even_o in_o the_o text_n if_o they_o dare_v for_o shame_n for_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o that_o english_a translation_n 1579_o bib._n a_o 1579_o they_o say_v or_o life_n or_o person_n there_o by_o advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o may_v read_v thus_o if_o it_o please_v he_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o life_n in_o the_o grave_n or_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o person_n as_o though_o either_o man_n soul_n or_o life_n be_v in_o the_o grave_n or_o anima_fw-la may_v be_v translate_v person_n which_o the_o self_n same_o english_a bible_n do_v not_o 14._o act._n 7._o v._n 14._o no_o not_o in_o those_o place_n where_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o signify_v the_o whole_a person_n for_o though_o this_o word_n soul_n by_o a_o figure_n be_v sometime_o take_v for_o the_o whole_a man_n yet_o even_o there_o they_o do_v not_o nor_o must_v not_o translate_v it_o otherwise_o then_o soul_n because_o our_o tongue_n bear_v that_o figure_n as_o well_o as_o latin_a greek_a or_o hebrew_n but_o here_o where_o it_o can_v not_o signify_v the_o whole_a person_n it_o be_v wicked_a to_o translate_v it_o so_o 4_o but_o as_o for_o the_o word_n grave_n that_o they_o put_v bold_o in_o the_o text_n to_o signify_v that_o howsoever_o you_o interpret_v soul_n or_o whatsoever_o you_o put_v for_o it_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v according_a to_o s._n august_n &_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n that_o his_o soul_n descend_v into_o hell_n while_o his_o body_n be_v in_o the_o grave_n but_o that_o his_o soul_n also_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n howsoever_o that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v so_o make_v it_o a_o certain_a and_o resolute_a conclusion_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o this_o place_n speak_v not_o of_o christ_n be_v in_o hell_n but_o in_o the_o grave_n and_o that_o according_a to_o his_o soul_n or_o life_n or_o person_n or_o as_o beza_n will_v have_v it_o his_o carcase_n or_o body_n and_o so_o his_o soul_n in_o hell_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v shall_v be_v his_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n as_o beza_n plain_o speak_v deinceps_fw-la see_v vigors_n sermon_n pag._n 110._o 115._o &_o deinceps_fw-la and_o the_o bezites_n covert_o insinuate_v and_o white_a shall_v be_v black_a and_o chalk_v shall_v be_v cheese_n and_o every_o thing_n shall_v be_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o will_v have_v it_o and_o all_o this_o their_o evident_a false_a translation_n must_v be_v to_o our_o miserable_a deceive_v poor_a soul_n the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o god_n word_n 5_o where_o we_o can_v not_o but_o marvel_v why_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o translate_v the_o word_n plain_o in_o this_o place_n of_o his_o soul_n be_v in_o hell_n vwhereas_fw-la in_o the_o creed_n they_o admit_v the_o word_n and_o interpret_v they_o that_o by_o suffer_a hell_n pain_n upon_o the_o cross_n so_o he_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o no_o otherwise_o why_o do_v they_o not_o here_o also_o keep_v the_o word_n for_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o translation_n and_o afterward_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o give_v they_o that_o gloze_n for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o heresy_n this_o mystery_n we_o know_v not_o and_o we_o will_v glad_o learn_v it_o of_o the_o puritan_n caluinist_n who_o english_a translation_n perhaps_o this_o be_v for_o the_o grosser_n caluinist_n be_v not_o so_o pure_a and_o precise_a in_o follow_a caluine_n as_o the_o puritan_n be_v that_o have_v well_o deserve_v that_o name_n above_o their_o fellow_n they_o in_o their_o other_o english_a bibles_n have_v in_o this_o place_n discharge_v themselves_o of_o false_a translation_n 1577._o bib._n a_o 1562._o and_o 1577._o say_v plain_o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hel._n but_o 19_o but_o see_v line_v dubit_fw-la pa._n 19_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o say_v so_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o guess_v &_o perhaps_o themselves_o can_v not_o tell_v yet_o what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o as_o appeareth_z by_o m._n whitaker_n answer_n to_o f._n campion_n wall_n whitak_n pag._n 165._o m._n hues_n b._n of_o s._n asaph_n in_o wall_n and_o he_o be_v now_o call_v a_o bishop_n among_o they_o and_o proceed_v doctor_n in_o oxford_n that_o can_v not_o obtain_v his_o grace_n to_o proceed_v doctor_n in_o cambridge_n because_o he_o preach_v christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o puritan_n in_o their_o second_o admonition_n to_o the_o parliament_n pag._n 43._o cry_v out_o against_o the_o politic_a caluinist_n for_o that_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v in_o english_a meet_a &_o song_a open_o in_o their_o church_n in_o these_o word_n his_o spirit_n do_v after_o this_o descend_v into_o the_o lower_n part_n to_o they_o that_o long_o in_o darkness_n be_v the_o true_a light_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o favour_v his_o descend_v into_o hell_n very_o much_o and_o so_o consequent_o may_v thereby_o build_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o purgatory_n and_o the_o puritan_n in_o their_o second_o reply_n against_o m._n whitegifts_n defence_n pag._n 7._o reprehend_v one_o of_o their_o chief_a caluimstical_a martyr_n for_o affirm_v as_o they_o term_v it_o a_o gross_a descend_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n into_o hel._n thus_o the_o puritan_n confess_v plain_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n against_o christ_n descend_v into_o hel._n 6_o the_o truth_n be_v howsoever_o the_o politic_a caluinist_n speak_v or_o write_v in_o this_o point_n more_o plausible_o and_o covert_o to_o the_o people_n and_o more_o agreable_o to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n then_o either_o caluine_n or_o their_o earnest_a brethren_n the_o puritan_n do_v which_o write_v and_o speak_v as_o fantastical_o and_o mad_o as_o they_o think_v yet_o neither_o do_v they_o believe_v this_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n or_o interpret_v it_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a holy_a father_n always_o have_v do_v neither_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o their_o new_a profession_n so_o to_o do_v or_o with_o their_o english_a translation_n in_o other_o place_n it_o can_v not_o stand_v with_o their_o profession_n for_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o just_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v in_o some_o three_o place_n of_o rest_n call_v abraham_n bosom_n or_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la till_o our_o saviour_n christ_n descend_v thither_o &_o deliver_v they_o from_o thence_o which_o they_o deny_v in_o their_o doctrine_n though_o they_o sing_v it_o in_o their_o metre_n neither_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o their_o english_a translation_n because_o in_o other_o place_n where_o the_o holy_a scripture_n evident_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o place_n calling_z it_z hell_n because_o that_o be_v a_o common_a name_n for_o every_o place_n and_o state_n of_o soul_n depart_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n till_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n have_v open_v heaven_n there_o for_o hell_n they_o translate_v grave_a 7_o as_o when_o jacob_n say_v 37._o gen._n 37._o descendam_fw-la ad_fw-la filium_fw-la meum_fw-la lugens_fw-la in_o infernum_fw-la i_o will_v go_v down_o to_o my_o son_n into_o hell_n mourning_n they_o translate_v i_o will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n unto_o my_o son_n mourning_n as_o though_o jacob_n think_v that_o his_o son_n joseph_n have_v be_v bury_v in_o a_o grave_n whereas_o jacob_n think_v and_o say_v immediate_o before_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o a_o wild_a beast_n have_v devour_v he_o and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v in_o any_o grave_n or_o as_o
be_v raise_v up_o and_o to_o morrow_o thou_o and_o thy_o son_n shall_v be_v with_o i_o and_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la say_v 46.23_o eccl._n 46.23_o that_o samuël_n die_v and_o afterward_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v never_o have_v thus_o express_v whether_o it_o be_v samuël_n in_o deed_n or_o not_o if_o saul_n and_o the_o jew_v then_o have_v believe_v that_o their_o prophet_n and_o patriarch_n have_v be_v in_o heaven_n above_o and_o as_o for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n they_o make_v it_o as_o every_o boy_n among_o the_o jew_n do_v well_o know_v as_o proper_a a_o word_n for_o hell_n as_o panis_fw-la be_v for_o bread_n and_o as_o unproper_a for_o a_o grave_n though_o so_o it_o may_v be_v use_v by_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n as_o cymba_fw-la charontis_fw-la be_v latin_a for_o death_n 27_o but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o these_o do_v not_o the_o great_a and_o most_o ancient_a rabbin_n so_o to_o call_v they_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la always_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n by_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d trin._n geneb_n li._n 3._o de_fw-fr trin._n which_o be_v propre_o hell_n do_v not_o the_o talmudiste_n and_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n and_o rabbi_n solomon_n jarhi_n handle_v these_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n he_o will_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o sheol_n interpret_v it_o by_o gehinum_fw-la that_o be_v gehenna_n hell_n and_o yet_o the_o caluiniste_n bring_v this_o place_n for_o a_o example_n that_o it_o signify_v grave_a likewise_o upon_o this_o place_n let_v all_o sinner_n be_v turn_v into_o sheol_n the_o foresay_a rabbin_n interpret_v it_o by_o gehinum_fw-la hell_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o the_o proverbe_n and_o in_o job_n it_o be_v join_v with_o abaddom_n 26._o proverb_n 15._o job._n 26._o where_o rabbi_n levi_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o hebrews_n expound_v sheol_n to_o be_v the_o low_a region_n of_o the_o world_n a_o deep_a place_n opposite_a to_o heaven_n whereof_o it_o be_v write_v if_o i_o descend_v into_o hell_n thou_o be_v present_a &_o so_o do_v rabbi_n abraham_n expound_v the_o same_o word_n in_o chap._n 2._o jonae_fw-la 28_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o hebrews_n see_v the_o skill_n or_o the_o honesty_n of_o beza_n say_v that_o sheol_n with_o the_o hebrews_n signify_v nothing_o but_o grave_n whereas_o in_o deed_n to_o speak_v skilful_o upright_o and_o not_o contentious_o it_o may_v signify_v grave_a sometime_o secondary_o but_o hell_n principal_o and_o propre_o as_o be_v manifest_a for_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o word_n so_o often_o use_v and_o so_o familiar_a in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v hell_n as_o this_o and_o for_o that_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la do_v always_o interpret_v it_o by_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 29_o the_o which_o greeke_n word_n be_v so_o notorious_a and_o peculiar_a for_o hell_n that_o the_o pagan_n use_v it_o also_o for_o pluto_n who_o they_o feign_a to_o be_v god_n of_o hell_n and_o not_o god_n of_o grave_n and_o if_o they_o will_v stand_v with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n we_o may_v beat_v they_o with_o their_o own_o kind_n of_o reason_v out_o of_o poëre_n &_o profane_a writer_n and_o out_o of_o all_o lexicon_n unless_o they_o will_v tell_v we_o contrary_a to_o their_o custom_n that_o we_o christian_n must_v attend_v the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o this_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n and_o in_o christian_a writer_n 27._o annot._n in_o act._n 2_o 27._o and_o that_o in_o they_o it_o signify_v grave_a for_o so_o beza_n seem_v to_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n of_o the_o bible_n translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n aforesaid_a by_o this_o greek_a word_n as_o signify_v a_o dark_a place_n whereas_o the_o greek_a poëte_n use_v it_o for_o that_o which_o the_o latin_n call_v inferos_fw-la that_o be_v hel._n which_o ambiguity_n say_v he_o of_o the_o word_n make_v many_o err_v affirm_v christ_n descend_v into_o hel._n so_o be_v limbus_n build_v whereunto_o afterward_o purgatory_n be_v lay_v 30_o i_o see_v beza_n his_o wylines_n very_o well_o in_o this_o point_n for_o here_o the_o man_n have_v utter_v all_o his_o hart_n and_o the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o his_o crafty_a meaning_n of_o this_o corrupt_a translation_n that_o to_o avoid_v these_o three_o thing_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o purgatory_n he_o and_o his_o companion_n wrest_v the_o foresay_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o signification_n of_o grave_n but_o let_v the_o indifferent_a christian_n reader_n only_a consider_v beza_n his_o own_o word_n in_o this_o place_n point_n by_o point_n 31_o first_n he_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a poëte_n be_v wont_a to_o use_v the_o greek_a word_n for_o hell_n second_o that_o they_o which_o interpret_v the_o bible_n out_o of_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a use_v the_o very_a same_o word_n for_o that_o hebrew_n word_n whereof_o we_o have_v now_o dispute_v three_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o of_o they_o he_o speak_v 24._o ibid._n v._o 24._o as_o a_o little_a before_o he_o express_v understand_v the_o say_v greek_a word_n for_o hell_n and_o thereby_o grew_a to_o those_o error_n as_o he_o impudent_o affirm_v of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n &_o of_o the_o place_n in_o hell_n where_o the_o father_n be_v rest_v expect_v the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o the_o reader_n do_v easy_o see_v that_o both_o the_o profane_a and_o also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n of_o the_o word_n be_v for_o hell_n and_o not_o for_o grave_n inferi_fw-la infernus_fw-la inferi_fw-la 32_o and_o for_o the_o latin_a word_n it_o be_v the_o like_a case_n for_o all_o the_o world_n &_o if_o a_o man_n will_v ask_v but_o his_o child_n that_o come_v from_o the_o grammar_n what_o be_v infernus_fw-la he_o will_v say_v hell_n and_o not_o grave_a what_o be_v latin_a for_o grave_n he_o will_v answer_n sepulchrum_n or_o monumentum_fw-la but_o never_o infernus_fw-la unless_o one_o of_o these_o caluinisticall_a translatour_n teach_v he_o so_o to_o deceive_v his_o father_n 33_o now_o then_o to_o draw_v to_o a_o conclusion_n of_o this_o their_o corruption_n also_o in_o their_o english_a translation_n whereas_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a and_o latin_a word_n do_v most_o proper_o and_o usual_o signify_v hell_n and_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a interpreter_n precise_o in_o every_o place_n use_n for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n that_o one_o greek_a word_n and_o that_o one_o latin_a word_n which_o by_o all_o custom_n of_o speak_v &_o writing_n signify_v hell_n mur_n hell_n if_o they_o object_n unto_o we_o some_o catholic_n that_o translate_v it_o sepulchrum_n as_o they_o do_v it_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o they_o also_o but_o so_o far_o less_o than_o in_o the_o protestant_n as_o chance_v medley_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o wilful_a mur_n it_o have_v be_v the_o part_n of_o sincere_a and_o true_a meaning_n translatour_n to_o 07_o have_v translate_v it_o also_o in_o english_a always_o by_o the_o word_n hell_n and_o afterward_o to_o have_v dispute_v of_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o whether_o and_z when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o hell_n or_o grave_n or_o lake_n or_o death_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o in_o one_o place_n they_o have_v do_v it_o very_o exact_o and_o indifferent_o namely_o when_o jonas_n say_v c._n 2._o v._n 2._o out_o of_o the_o whale_n belly_n out_o of_o the_o belly_n of_o hell_n cry_v i_o and_o thou_o bearde_v my_o voice_n so_o all_o translate_v it_o and_o well_o whatsoever_o it_o signify_v in_o this_o place_n they_o think_v that_o hell_n here_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o whale_n belly_n and_o the_o affliction_n of_o jonas_n and_o so_o the_o word_n may_v signify_v by_o a_o metaphorical_a speech_n as_o when_o we_o say_v in_o english_a it_o be_v a_o hell_n to_o live_v thus_o and_o *_o 1577._o see_v their_o marginal_a annot_fw-mi jonae_fw-la 2_o 2._o bib._n 1577._o therefore_o no_o doubt_n they_o do_v here_o translate_v it_o so_o to_o insinuate_v that_o in_o other_o place_n it_o may_v as_o well_o signify_v grave_a as_o here_o the_o whale_n belly_n 34_o but_o then_o they_o shall_v have_v translate_v it_o also_o hell_n in_o other_o place_n as_o they_o do_v in_o this_o and_o afterward_o have_v interpret_v it_o grave_a in_o their_o commentary_n and_o not_o presumptuous_o to_o straiten_v and_o limit_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o their_o private_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n &_o to_o prejudice_n the_o ancient_a and_o learned_a holy_a father_n which_o look_v far_o more_o deep_o and_o spiritual_o into_o this_o prophecy_n then_o to_o jonas_n or_o the_o whale_n *_o 12._o mat._n 12._o our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o apply_v it_o to_o his_o own_o person_n
lead_v a_o man_n even_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n to_o falsify_v god_n holy_a word_n 42_o yea_o beza_n say_v further_a to_o this_o purpose_n much_o more_o against_o his_o skill_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n if_o he_o have_v any_o at_o all_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o preposition_n can_v bear_v this_o sense_n for_o which_o or_o in_o respect_n whereof_o and_o therefore_o he_o translate_v the_o greek_a into_o latin_a thus_o exauditus_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la metu_fw-la he_o be_v hear_v from_o fear_n not_o for_o fear_v or_o for_o his_o reverence_n and_o because_o from_o fear_n be_v a_o hard_a speech_n and_o dark_a that_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o english_a translator_n say_v in_o that_o which_o he_o fear_v far_o from_o beza_n in_o word_n but_o aggreable_o in_o sense_n illyric_n flac._n illyric_n 43_o but_o for_o this_o matter_n we_o send_v they_o to_o flaccus_n illyricus_n a_o captain_n lutherane_n who_o dispute_v this_o very_a point_n against_o the_o caluiniste_n and_o teach_v they_o that_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a than_o that_o signification_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o proof_n whereof_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o also_o refer_v they_o to_o these_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n mat._n 13._o luc._n 22._o and_o 24._o act._n 12._o psal_n 87._o and_o machab._n 5_o 21._o where_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o a_o genitive_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o a_o accusative_a signify_v all_o one_o which_o beza_n deny_v gentle_a reader_n bear_v with_o these_o tedious_a grammatication_n fit_a to_o be_v handle_v in_o latin_a but_o necessary_a in_o this_o case_n also_o good_a for_o they_o that_o understand_v &_o for_o the_o rest_n a_o occasion_n to_o ask_v of_o they_o that_o have_v skill_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n whether_o we_o accuse_v our_o adversary_n just_o or_o no_o of_o false_a translate_n the_o holy_a scripture_n 44_o and_o we_o beseech_v they_o to_o give_v we_o a_o good_a reason_n why_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v precise_o the_o greek_a do_v not_o observe_v true_o the_o greek_a point_n in_o such_o place_n as_o concern_v this_o present_a controversy_n for_o the_o place_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n which_o they_o allege_v of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n suffering_n from_o the_o beginning_n thereby_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o just_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n may_v enter_v heaven_n then_o 8._o c._n 13_o 8._o as_o well_o as_o after_o his_o real_a and_o actual_a death_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a point_n say_v thus_o all_o that_o dwell_n upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v worship_v he_o the_o beast_n who_o name_n have_v not_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n of_o the_o lamb_n slame_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n where_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o greek_a text_n say_v not_o the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o that_o the_o name_n of_o those_o antichristian_a idolater_n be_v not_o write_v in_o god_n eternal_a book_n of_o predestination_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o it_o be_v also_o most_o plain_a without_o all_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o 17_o chapter_n v._n 8._o if_o in_o a_o place_n of_o no_o controversy_n they_o have_v not_o be_v curious_a in_o point_n of_o the_o greek_a they_o may_v have_v great_a reason_n sometime_o to_o alter_v the_o same_o 45_o but_o if_o in_o point_n of_o controversy_n between_o we_o they_o will_v say_v diverse_a point_v be_v of_o no_o importance_n they_o know_v the_o contrary_a by_o the_o example_n of_o ancient_a heretic_n which_o use_v this_o mean_a also_o to_o serve_v their_o false_a heretical_a purpose_n if_o they_o say_v our_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n point_v it_o so_o let_v they_o profess_v before_o god_n and_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o do_v it_o of_o reverence_n to_o the_o say_v ancient_a latin_a text_n or_o because_o it_o be_v indifferent_a &_o not_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n &_o for_o this_o one_o place_n we_o will_v admit_v their_o answer_n chap._n viii_o heretical_a translation_n concern_v justification_n about_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n as_o it_o have_v many_o branch_n &_o their_o etrour_n therein_o be_v manifold_a so_o be_v their_o english_a translation_n according_o many_o way_n false_a and_o heretical_a first_o against_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n and_o by_o keep_v the_o commandment_n they_o suppress_v the_o very_a name_n of_o justification_n in_o all_o such_o place_n where_o the_o word_n signify_v the_o commandment_n or_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n most_o common_a and_o usual_a namely_o in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n in_o the_o psalm_n 118._o that_o begin_v thus_o beati_fw-la immaculati_fw-la in_o the_o psalm_n 147._o v._n 19_o 1_o mac._n 1._o v._n 51._o and_o c._n 2._o v._n 21._o luc._n 1._o v._n 6._o ro._n 2._o v._n 26._o in_o all_o which_o place_n and_o the_o like_a where_o the_o greek_a signify_v justice_n &_o iustification_n most_o exact_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a as_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a translate_v iustitias_fw-la and_o iustificationes_fw-la there_o the_o english_a translation_n say_v joint_o and_o with_o one_o consent_n ordinance_n or_o statute_n for_o example_n ro._n 2._o if_o the_o uncircumcision_n keep_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v it_o not_o be_v count_v for_o circumcision_n and_o luc._n 1_o 6._o they_o be_v both_o righteous_a before_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d blameless_a why_o translate_v you_o it_o ordinance_n and_o avoid_v the_o term_n iustification_n be_v it_o because_o you_o will_v follow_v the_o greek_a i_o beseech_v you_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d just_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v justify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d iustification_n or_o justice_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n you_o may_v perhaps_o pretend_v that_o you_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n wvord_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o there_o you_o translate_v statute_n or_o ordinance_n but_o even_o there_o also_o be_v not_o the_o seventie_o greek_a interpreter_n sufficient_a to_o teach_v you_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n who_o always_o interpret_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o english_a iustification_n 2_o but_o be_v it_o that_o you_o may_v control_v they_o in_o the_o hebrew_n which_o none_o but_o fool_n will_v grant_v unto_o you_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n what_o pretence_n have_v you_o do_v you_o there_o also_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n or_o rather_o the_o greek_a the_o greek_n undoubted_o you_o shall_v translate_v what_o reason_n then_o can_v you_o have_v why_o you_o do_v not_o none_o other_o sure_o then_o that_o which_o beza_n give_v for_o himself_o say_v that_o he_o reject_v the_o word_n iustification_n notwithstanding_o it_o express_v the_o greek_a word_n for_o word_n notwithstanding_o the_o seventie_o greek_a interpreter_n use_v it_o to_o signify_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o in_o latin_a it_o be_v common_o translate_v iustificationes_fw-la notwithstanding_o all_o this_o luc._n annot._n in_o 1_o luc._n for_o this_o only_a cause_n say_v he_o do_v i_o reject_v it_o to_o avoid_v the_o cavillation_n that_o may_v be_v make_v by_o this_o word_n against_o justification_n by_o faith_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o word_n true_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a may_v minister_v great_a occasion_n to_o prove_v by_o so_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o man_n justification_n be_v not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o also_o by_o keep_v the_o la_o and_o observe_v the_o commandment_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a iustification_n because_o they_o concur_v to_o justification_n and_o make_v a_o man_n just_a as_o by_o s._n luke_n word_n also_o be_v well_o signify_v which_o have_v this_o allusion_n that_o they_o be_v both_o just_a because_o they_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o iustification_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o they_o of_o purpose_n suppress_v by_o other_o word_n 3_o and_o hereof_o also_o it_o rise_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o when_o he_o can_v possible_o avoid_v the_o word_n in_o his_o translation_n as_o apoc._n 19_o 8._o bissinum_fw-la enim_fw-la iustificationes_fw-la sunt_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la the_o silk_n be_v the_o iustification_n of_o saint_n there_o he_o help_v the_o matter_n with_o this_o commentary_n that_o iustification_n 19_o beza_n annot._n in_o apoc._n 19_o be_v those_o good_a work_n which_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o lively_a faith_n but_o our_o english_a translatour_n have_v a_o other_o way_n to_o avoid_v the_o word_n even_o in_o their_o translation_n for_o they_o say_v here_o the_o righteousness_n of_o saint_n because_o
they_o can_v not_o say_v ordinance_n of_o saint_n and_o they_o will_v not_o say_v iustification_n of_o saint_n know_v very_o well_o by_o bezaes_n own_o commentary_n that_o this_o word_n include_v the_o good_a work_n of_o saint_n which_o work_n if_o they_o shall_v in_o translate_n call_v their_o iustification_n it_o will_v go_v sore_o against_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n therefore_o do_v they_o translate_v in_o steed_n thereof_o ordinance_n &_o statute_n where_o they_o can_v which_o be_v term_n further_a of_o from_o justification_n and_o where_o they_o can_v not_o there_o they_o say_v righteousness_n make_v it_o also_o the_o plural_a number_n whereas_o the_o more_o proper_a greek_a word_n for_o righteousness_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dan._n 6_o 22._o which_o there_o some_o of_o they_o translate_v ungiltinesse_n because_o they_o will_v not_o translate_v exact_o if_o you_o will_v hire_v they_o 4_o and_o therefore_o as_o for_o justice_n and_o iustification_n they_o say_v righteousness_n 6._o bib._n of_o the_o year_n 1577._o most_o approve_a mat._n 1_o 19_o luc._n 1_o 6._o so_o for_o just_a they_o translate_v righteous_a and_o by_o this_o mean_n joseph_n be_v a_o righteous_a man_n rather_o than_o a_o just_a man_n and_o zacharie_n &_o elisabeth_n be_v both_o righteous_a before_o god_n rather_o than_o just_a because_o when_o a_o man_n be_v call_v just_a it_o sound_v that_o he_o be_v so_o in_o deed_n and_o not_o by_o imputation_n only_o as_o a_o wise_a man_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v wise_a in_o deed_n and_o not_o only_o so_o impute_v therefore_o do_v they_o more_o glad_o and_o more_o often_o say_v righteous_a man_n rather_o than_o just_a man_n and_o when_o they_o do_v say_v just_a man_n as_o sometime_o they_o do_v lest_o they_o may_v seem_v wilful_a inexcusable_o there_o they_o understand_v just_a by_o imputation_n and_o not_o in_o deed_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o bezaes_n annotation_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n note_v also_o that_o they_o put_v the_o word_n just_a when_o faith_n be_v join_v withal_o as_o ro._n 1._o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n to_o signify_v that_o justification_n be_v by_o faith_n but_o if_o work_n be_v join_v withal_o and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n as_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v luc._n 1._o there_o they_o say_v righteous_a to_o suppress_v justification_n by_o work_n 5_o and_o certain_a it_o be_v if_o there_o be_v no_o sinister_a meaning_n they_o will_v in_o no_o place_n avoid_v to_o say_v just_a justice_n justification_n where_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d word_n for_o word_n as_o for_o example_n 2_o tim._n 4_o 8._o in_o all_o their_o bible_n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n henceforth_o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_n judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o again_o 2_o thess_n 1._o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n which_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o righteous_n judgement_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o you_o may_v be_v count_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o which_o you_o safe_o for_o it_o be_v a_o righteous_n thing_n with_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d iustum_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o that_o be_v trouble_v rest_n with_o we_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n from_o heaven_n and_o again_o hebr._n 6_o 10._o god_n be_v not_o vnrighteous_n to_o forget_v your_o good_a work_n and_o labour_n etc._n etc._n deus_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la iniustus_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la these_o be_v very_o pregnant_a place_n to_o discover_v their_o false_a purpose_n in_o conceal_v the_o word_n justice_n in_o all_o their_o bible_n for_o if_o they_o will_v say_v that_o justice_n be_v not_o a_o usual_a english_a word_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v righteousness_n yet_o i_o trow_v just_a and_o unjust_a be_v usual_a and_o well_o know_v why_o then_o will_v they_o not_o say_v at_o the_o least_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v god_n the_o just_a judge_n a_o token_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o just_a thing_n with_o god_n god_n be_v not_o unju_v to_o forget_v &_o c_o why_o be_v it_o not_o at_o the_o least_o in_o one_o of_o their_o english_a bibles_n be_v so_o both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a 6_o understand_v gentle_a reader_n and_o mark_v well_o faith_n the_o scripture_n most_o evident_a for_o justification_n by_o work_n against_o only_a faith_n that_o if_o s._n paul_n word_n be_v true_o translate_v thus_o a_o crown_n of_o justice_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o which_o our_o lord_n the_o just_a judge_n will_v render_v unto_o i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o so_o in_o the_o other_o place_n it_o will_v infer_v that_o man_n be_v just_o crown_v in_o heaven_n for_o their_o good_a work_n upon_o earth_n and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n justice_n so_o to_o do_v &_o that_o he_o will_v do_v so_o because_o he_o be_v a_o iustiudge_n &_o because_o he_o will_v show_v his_o just_a judgement_n and_o he_o will_v not_o forget_v so_o to_o do_v because_o he_o be_v not_o unjust_a as_o the_o ancient_a father_n namely_o the_o greek_a doctor_n s_o chrysostom_n terra_fw-la psal_n 57_o si_fw-mi utique_fw-la est_fw-la fructus_fw-la iusto_fw-la utique_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la iudicans_fw-la eos_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la theodorete_n &_o oecumenius_n upon_o these_o place_n do_v interpret_v and_o expound_v in_o so_o much_o that_o oecumenius_n say_v thus_o upon_o the_o foresay_a place_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n see_v here_o that_o to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n procure_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n according_a to_o just_a judgement_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o according_a to_o grace_v which_o lest_o the_o adversary_n may_v take_v in_o the_o worse_a part_n as_o though_o it_o be_v only_a god_n justice_n or_o just_a judgement_n and_o not_o his_o favour_n or_o grace_n also_o s._n augustine_n excellent_o declare_v howv_v it_o be_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n his_o grace_n and_o favour_n and_o mercy_n in_o make_v we_o by_o his_o grace_n to_o live_v and_o believe_v well_o and_o so_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o heaven_n his_o justice_n and_o just_a judgement_n to_o render_v and_o repay_v for_o those_o work_n which_o himself_o wrought_v in_o we_o life_n everlasting_a which_o he_o express_v thus_o 6._o aug._n de_fw-fr gra_fw-mi &_o lib._n arb_n ca._n 6._o how_o shall_v he_o render_v or_o repay_v as_o a_o just_a judge_n unless_o he_o have_v give_v it_o as_o a_o merciful_a father_n where_o s._n augustine_n urge_v the_o word_n of_o repay_v as_o due_a and_o of_o be_v a_o just_a judge_n therefore_o both_o which_o the_o say_a translatour_n corrupt_v not_o only_o say_v righteous_a judge_n for_o just_a judge_n but_o that_o he_o will_v give_v a_o crown_n which_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n not_o due_a for_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o will_v render_v or_o repay_v which_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n due_a and_o deserve_a &_o have_v relation_n to_o work_n go_v before_o for_o the_o which_o the_o crown_n be_v repay_v he_o say_v not_o say_v theophylacte_n upon_o this_o place_n he_o will_v give_v but_o he_o will_v render_v or_o repay_v as_o a_o certain_a debt_n for_o he_o be_v just_a will_v define_v &_o limit_v the_o reward_n according_a to_o the_o labour_n the_o crown_n therefore_o be_v due_a debt_n because_o of_o the_o judge_n justice_n so_o say_v he_o 7_o which_o speech_n be_v most_o true_a as_o be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o we_o know_v how_o odious_o the_o adversary_n may_v &_o do_v misconstrue_v they_o to_o the_o ignorant_a as_o though_o we_o challenge_v heaven_n by_o our_o own_o work_n and_o as_o though_o we_o make_v god_n bind_v to_o us._n which_o we_o do_v not_o god_n forbid_v but_o because_o he_o have_v prepare_v good_a work_n for_o we_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o walk_v in_o they_o 10._o eph._n 2_o v._o 10._o and_o do_v by_o his_o grace_n cause_v we_o to_o do_v they_o and_o have_v promise_v life_n everlasting_a for_o they_o and_o tell_v we_o in_o all_o his_o holy_a scripture_n that_o to_o do_v they_o be_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n therefore_o not_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o work_n as_o our_o own_o or_o as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o upon_o the_o good_a work_n wrought_v through_o god_n grace_n by_o we_o his_o silly_a instrument_n we_o have_v great_a confidence_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o be_v assure_v that_o these_o work_n procede_v of_o his_o grace_n 10._o hebr._n 10._o be_v so_o
contra_fw-la bonitatem_fw-la fidei_fw-la that_o be_v according_a to_o their_o own_o translation_n a_o faithful_a friend_n have_v no_o peer_n weight_n of_o gold_n &_o silver_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o goodness_n of_o his_o faith_n 6._o now_o if_o they_o will_v say_v though_o their_o translation_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n be_v not_o so_o exact_a and_o commodious_a other_o how_o good_a work_n merit_v life_n everlasting_a though_o one_o incomparable_o exceed_v the_o other_o yet_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v all_o one_o for_o if_o these_o present_a affliction_n be_v not_o equal_a or_o comparable_a to_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v than_o neither_o be_v they_o worthy_a of_o it_o nor_o can_v deserve_v or_o merit_v it_o let_v the_o christian_a reader_n mark_v the_o difference_n first_o their_o beza_n and_o caluin_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o one_o and_o not_o of_o the_o other_o second_o the_o passion_n &_o affliction_n that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n suffer_v all_o his_o life_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o the_o eternal_a glory_n which_o he_o obtain_v thereby_o yet_o do_v he_o thereby_o deserve_v and_o merit_v eternal_a glory_n not_o only_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o by_o the_o least_o affliction_n he_o suffer_v do_v he_o deserve_v all_o this_o unless_o you_o will_v deny_v also_o that_o he_o merit_v and_o deserve_v his_o glory_n which_o your_o opinion_n a_o man_n may_v very_o well_o gather_v by_o *_o 1579._o heb._n 2_o 9_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o year_n 1580._o &_o bib._n 1579._o some_o of_o your_o false_a translation_n but_o that_o you_o will_v think_v we_o to_o suspicious_a which_o perhaps_o we_o will_v examine_v hereafter_o three_o the_o present_a pleasure_n of_o advoutrie_n during_o a_o man_n life_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o the_o eternal_a torment_n of_o hell_n fire_n and_o yet_o it_o do_v merit_n and_o deserve_v the_o same_o four_o the_o apostle_n by_o make_v a_o incomparable_a difference_n of_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v with_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o time_n do_v as_o s._n chrisostom_n say_v exhort_v they_o the_o more_o vehement_o and_o move_v they_o to_o sustain_v all_o thing_n the_o more_o wil_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o if_o he_o say_v as_o they_o translate_v the_o affliction_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o heaven_n you_o be_v never_o the_o near_a heaven_n for_o they_o only_o believe_v this_o have_v not_o be_v to_o exhort_v they_o but_o to_o discourage_v they_o 17._o 2_o cor._n 4._o v._n 17._o five_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o will_v else_o where_o encourage_v they_o to_o suffer_v say_v plain_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o tribulation_n which_o present_o be_v for_o a_o moment_n and_o light_n work_v above_o measure_n exceed_o a_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n in_o us._n 7_o see_v you_o not_o a_o comparison_n between_o short_a and_o eternal_a light_a tribulation_n &_o exceed_o weighty_a glory_n and_o yet_o that_o one_o also_o work_v the_o other_o that_o be_v cause_v purchase_v and_o deserve_v the_o other_o for_o like_v as_o the_o little_a seed_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o the_o great_a tree_n yet_o cause_v it_o and_o bring_v it_o forth_o so_o out_o tribulation_n &_o good_a work_n otherwise_o incomparable_a to_o eternal_a glory_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n grace_n work_v in_o we_o work_v purchase_v and_o cause_v the_o say_a glory_n for_o so_o they_o know_v very_o well_o the_o greek_a word_n import_v 10.11_o see_v this_o greek_a word_n 2_o cor._n 7._o thrice_o where_o themselves_o translate_v it_o cause_v work_v v._o 10.11_o though_o here_o also_o they_o translate_v it_o most_o false_o prepare_v bib._n a_o 1577._o 8_o last_o for_o most_o manifest_a evidence_n that_o these_o present_a tribulation_n and_o other_o good_a work_n be_v meritorious_a &_o worthy_a of_o the_o joy_n to_o come_v though_o not_o comparable_a to_o the_o same_o you_o shall_v hear_v the_o holy_a doctor_n say_v both_o in_o one_o passage_n or_o sentence_n 3._o ep_v 56._o nu_fw-la 3._o s._n cyprian_n thus_o o_o what_o manner_n of_o day_n shall_v come_v my_o brethren_n when_o our_o lord_n shall_v recount_v the_o merit_n of_o every_o one_o and_o pay_v we_o the_o reward_n or_o stipend_n of_o faith_n and_o devotion_n merita_fw-la singulorum_fw-la merita_fw-la ep._n 56._o here_o be_v merit_n &_o the_o reward_n for_o the_o same_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o say_a doctor_n what_o glory_n shall_v it_o be_v and_o how_o great_a joy_n to_o be_v admit_v to_o see_v god_n so_o to_o be_v honour_v that_o thou_o receive_v the_o joy_n of_o eternal_a life_n with_o christ_n thy_o lord_n god_n to_o receive_v there_o that_o which_o neither_o eye_n have_v see_v nor_o ear_n have_v hear_v nor_o have_v ascend_v into_o the_o hart_n of_o man_n for_o that_o we_o shall_v receive_v great_a thing_n than_o here_o either_o we_o do_v or_o suffer_v the_o apostle_n pronounce_v say_v the_o passion_n of_o this_o time_n be_v not_o condign_a or_o comparable_a to_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v here_o we_o see_v that_o the_o stipend_n or_o reward_n of_o the_o merit_v aforesaid_a be_v incomparable_o great_a than_o the_o say_a merit_n 9_o likewise_o s._n augustine_n sanctis_fw-la ser._n 37._o de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la the_o exceed_a goodness_n of_o god_n have_v provide_v this_o that_o the_o labour_n shall_v soon_o be_v end_v meritorum_fw-la praemia_fw-la meritorum_fw-la but_o the_o reward_n of_o the_o merit_n shall_v endure_v without_o end_n the_o apostle_n testify_v the_o passion_n of_o this_o time_n be_v not_o comparable_a etc._n etc._n for_o we_o shall_v receive_v great_a bliss_n then_o be_v the_o affliction_n of_o all_o passion_n whatsoever_o thus_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o short_a tribulation_n be_v true_a merit_n of_o endless_a glory_n though_o not_o comparable_a to_o the_o same_o which_o truth_n you_o impugn_v by_o your_o false_a and_o heretical_a translation_n but_o let_v we_o see_v further_o your_o deal_n in_o the_o self_n same_o controversy_n to_o make_v it_o plain_o that_o you_o bend_v your_o translation_n against_o it_o more_o than_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v permit_v you_o 10_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n where_o there_o be_v honourable_a mention_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n and_o their_o reward_n in_o heaven_n the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dignos_fw-la se_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n have_v prove_v they_o and_o find_v they_o meet_v for_o himself_o to_o omit_v here_o that_o you_o use_v the_o present_a tense_n whereas_o in_o the_o greek_a they_o be_v preter_fw-la tense_n god_n know_v why_o only_o this_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v no_o true_a nor_o sincere_a tranlation_n but_o to_o wink_v at_o small_a fault_n why_o say_v you_o here_o in_o all_o your_o bibles_n that_o god_n find_v his_o saint_n and_o holy_a servant_n meet_v for_o himself_o and_o not_o worthy_a of_o himself_o see_v your_o partiality_n and_o be_v ashamed_a 11_o in_o the_o apostle_n place_n before_o examine_v you_o say_v negative_o that_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o time_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v the_o greek_a not_o bear_v that_o translation_n but_o here_o when_o you_o shall_v say_v affirmative_o and_o that_o word_n for_o word_n after_o the_o greek_a that_o god_n find_v they_o worthy_a of_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o you_o say_v meet_v for_o himself_o avoid_v the_o term_n worthy_a because_o merit_n be_v include_v therein_o so_o that_o when_o you_o will_v in_o your_o translation_n deny_v merit_n gloriam_fw-la condignae_fw-la ad_fw-la gloriam_fw-la then_o condignae_fw-la ad_fw-la signify_v worthy_a of_o when_o you_o shall_v in_o your_o traslation_n affirm_v merit_n se_fw-la dignos_fw-la se_fw-la than_o dignus_n with_o a_o ablative_a case_n do_v not_o signify_v worthy_a of_o no_o matuel_n if_o such_o wilfulness_n will_v not_o see_v the_o word_n merit_n or_o that_o which_o be_v equivalent_a thereto_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n for_o when_o you_o do_v see_v it_o and_o shall_v translate_v it_o you_o suppress_v it_o by_o a_o other_o word_n but_o this_o be_v a_o case_n worthy_a of_o examination_n scripture_n merit_n of_o good_a work_n plain_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n whether_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o word_n merit_n or_o the_o equivalent_a thereof_o for_o we_o will_v force_v they_o even_o by_o their_o own_o translation_n to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v find_v there_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v translate_v it_o according_o often_o when_o they_o do_v not_o yea_o that_o if_o we_o do_v not_o see_v it_o in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n yet_o they_o must_v needs_o see_v it_o and_o find_v it_o in_o the_o greek_a 12_o first_o when_o they_o translate_v the_o foresay_a place_n thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o affliction_n of_o this_o
time_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v they_o mean_v this_o deserve_v not_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v for_o to_o that_o purpose_n they_o do_v so_o translate_v it_o as_o have_v be_v declare_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d again_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n or_o wage_n what_o be_v mean_v but_o that_o he_o deserve_v his_o wage_n and_o more_o plain_o tob._n 9_o they_o translate_v thus_o brother_n azarias_n providentiae_fw-la non_fw-la ero_fw-la condignus_fw-la providentiae_fw-la if_o i_o shall_v give_v myself_o to_o be_v thy_o servant_n i_o shall_v not_o deserve_v thy_o providence_n and_o such_o like_a if_o then_o in_o these_o place_n both_o the_o greek_a &_o the_o latin_a signify_v to_o be_v worthy_a of_o or_o not_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o to_o deserve_v or_o not_o to_o deserve_v then_o they_o must_v allow_v we_o the_o same_o signification_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o word_n in_o other_o like_a place_n namely_o apoc._n 5._o of_o our_o saviour_n merit_n thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lamb_n that_o be_v kill_v be_v worthy_a to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n etc._n etc._n what_o be_v that_o to_o say_v but_z deserve_v to_o receive_v for_o so_o i_o trust_v they_o will_v allow_v we_o to_o say_v of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o in_o deed_n deserve_v again_o of_o the_o damn_a 〈◊〉_d apoc._n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o thou_o have_v give_v they_o blood_n to_o drink_v for_o they_o be_v worthy_a or_o they_o have_v deserve_v be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o last_o of_o the_o elect_a thus_o they_o shall_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o white_a because_o they_o be_v worthy_a apoc._n 3._o that_o be_v se_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d digni_fw-la sunt_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dignos_fw-la se_fw-la because_o they_o deserve_v it_o and_o so_o in_o the_o place_n before_o by_o they_o corrupt_v god_n find_v they_o worthy_a of_o he_o that_o be_v such_o as_o deserve_v to_o be_v with_o he_o in_o eternal_a glory_n thus_o by_o their_o own_o translation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o dignus_fw-la be_v plain_o deduce_v worthiness_n desert_n and_o merit_n of_o saint_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 13_o but_o to_o proceed_v one_o step_n further_o deserte●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v deserte●_n we_o prove_v it_o also_o to_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n thus_o themselves_o translate_v thus_o heb._n 10_o 29._o of_o how_o much_o sore_a punishment_n shall_v he_o be_v worthy_a which_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o one_o of_o their_o bibles_n of_o the_o year_n 1562_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d very_o false_o and_o corrupt_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n worthy_a of_o say_v thus_o how_o much_o sore_a shall_v he_o be_v punish_v &c_n &c_n fear_v no_o doubt_n by_o translate_n the_o greek_a word_n sincere_o this_o consequence_n that_o now_o i_o shall_v infer_v to_o wit_n if_o the_o greek_a word_n here_o by_o their_o own_o translation_n signify_v to_o be_v worthy_a of_o or_o to_o deserve_v be_v speak_v of_o pain_n and_o punishment_n deserve_v then_o must_v they_o grant_v we_o the_o same_o word_n so_o to_o signify_v else_o where_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o deserve_a heaven_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o in_o these_o place_n luc._n 21._o watch_z therefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o time_n pray_v that_o you_o may_v be_v worthy_a to_o stand_v before_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o c._n 20._o they_o that_o be_v worthy_a to_o attain_v to_o that_o world_n &_o to_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a neither_o marry_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o be_v marry_v &_o 2_o thess_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o you_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o which_o also_o you_o suffer_v 14_o thus_o you_o shall_v translate_v in_o all_o these_o place_n according_a to_o your_o translation_n of_o the_o former_a place_n to_o the_o hebrews_n or_o at_o the_o leastwise_o you_o shall_v have_v this_o sense_n and_o meaning_n as_o the_o old_a wulgar_a latin_a have_v translate_n in_o all_o these_o place_n habeamini_fw-la qui_fw-la digni_fw-la babebuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la digni_fw-la habeamini_fw-la count_v worthy_a but_o mean_v worthy_a in_o deed_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v abraham_n be_v repute_v just_a it_o be_v mean_v he_o be_v just_a in_o deed_n if_o you_o also_o have_v this_o meaning_n in_o your_o translation_n which_o here_o follow_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a then_o we_o appeal_v to_o yourselves_o whether_o to_o be_v count_v worthy_a and_o to_o be_v worthy_a &_o to_o deserve_v and_o to_o merit_n be_v not_o all_o one_o and_o so_o here_o also_o merit_n be_v deduce_v but_o if_o you_o mean_v according_a to_o your_o heresy_n to_o signify_v by_o translate_n count_v worthy_a that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o deed_n worthy_a then_o your_o purpose_n be_v heretical_a and_o translation_n false_a and_o repugnant_a to_o your_o translate_n the_o same_o word_n in_o other_o place_n as_o be_v declare_v and_o now_o further_o we_o will_v declare_v 15_o worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v make_v or_o to_o be_v worthy_a they_o who_o god_n do_v make_v worthy_a they_o be_v true_o and_o in_o deed_n worthy_a be_v they_o not_o but_o by_o your_o own_o translation_n of_o the_o same_o word_n in_o the_o active_a voice_n god_n do_v make_v they_o worthy_a therefore_o in_o the_o passive_a voice_n it_o must_v also_o signify_v to_o be_v make_v or_o to_o be_v in_o deed_n worthy_a for_o example_n 2_o thess_n 1_o 11._o you_o translate_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o also_o pray_v for_o you_o that_o our_o god_n may_v make_v you_o worthy_a of_o this_o call_n according_a to_o which_o translation_n why_o do_v you_o not_o also_o in_o the_o self_n same_o chapter_n a_o little_a before_o translate_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o you_o may_v be_v make_v worthy_a and_o so_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o which_o also_o you_o suffer_v you_o know_v the_o case_n be_v like_a in_o both_o place_n &_o in_o the_o greek_a doctor_n you_o special_o shall_v know_v by_o your_o ostentation_n of_o read_v they_o in_o greek_a that_o they_o according_a to_o this_o use_n of_o holy_a scripture_n very_o often_o use_v also_o this_o word_n both_o active_o &_o passive_o to_o make_v worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o to_o be_v make_v or_o to_o be_v worthy_a see_v the_o greek_a liturgy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 16_o which_o s._n chrysostom_n to_o put_v all_o out_o of_o doubt_n explicate_v thus_o in_o other_o word_n that_o he_o make_v we_o worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ser._n 1._o de_fw-la orando_fw-la deo_fw-la and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n c._n 3._o in_o the_o same_o sense_n passive_o god_n grant_v we_o may_v all_o be_v make_v worthy_a or_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o good_a thing_n promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o the_o say_a doctor_n it_o must_v needs_o signify_v to_o be_v worthy_a as_o when_o he_o say_v in_o colos_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o man_n live_v such_o a_o trade_n of_o life_n that_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o all_o be_v his_o gift_n for_o to_o say_v thus_o no_o man_n so_o live_v that_o he_o can_v be_v count_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v against_o the_o protestant_n own_o opinion_n which_o say_v they_o be_v count_v worthy_a that_o be_v not_o again_o to_o say_v no_o man_n so_o live_v that_o he_o can_v be_v make_v worthy_a be_v false_a because_o god_n can_v make_v the_o worst_a man_n worthy_a it_o remain_v then_o to_o say_v no_o man_n so_o live_v that_o he_o be_v worthy_a which_o a_o little_a before_o he_o declare_v thus_o no_o man_n by_o his_o own_o proper_a merit_n obtain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v as_o his_o own_o and_o of_o himself_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v show_v further_a out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o god_n make_v we_o worthy_a and_o so_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n worthy_a and_o here_o also_o we_o must_v convince_v you_o of_o false_a and_o partial_a interpretation_n 17_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o pray_v you_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v you_o must_v answer_n that_o it_o signify_v not_o only_o meet_v but_o also_o worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o so_o beza_n teach_v you_o &_o so_o you_o
translate_v mat._n 3_o 11._o etc._n etc._n 8_o 8._o &_o 1_o cor._n 15_o 9_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a in_o all_o three_o place_n and_o why_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v you_o not_o likewise_o follow_v the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n one_o step_n further_o say_v 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d col._n 1._o v._n 12._o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n the_o father_n that_o have_v make_v we_o worthy_a but_o translate_n rather_o thus_o which_o have_v make_v we_o meet_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o light_n here_o be_v the_o place_n where_o you_o shall_v have_v show_v your_o sincerity_n and_o have_v say_v that_o god_n make_v we_o worthy_a of_o heavenly_a bliss_n because_o you_o know_v if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v worthy_a than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o make_v worthy_a but_o you_o be_v like_a to_o beza_n your_o master_n who_o as_o though_o all_o interpretation_n of_o word_n be_v at_o his_o commandment_n say_v here_o and_o here_o and_o so_o forth_o i_o have_v follow_v the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n translate_n it_o worthy_a 1556._o annot._n in_o 3._o mat._n no._n test_n 1556._o but_o in_o such_o and_o such_o a_o place_n mean_v this_o for_o one_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o say_v meet_v malui_fw-la idoneum_fw-la dicere_fw-la malui_fw-la but_o that_o both_o he_o and_o you_o shall_v here_o also_o have_v translate_v worthy_a the_o greek_a father_n shall_v teach_v you_o if_o we_o be_v not_o worthy_a or_o able_a to_o control_n so_o mighty_a grecian_n as_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v when_o you_o crow_v upon_o your_o own_o dunghill_n otherwise_o in_o your_o translation_n show_v small_a skill_n or_o great_a malice_n 18_o the_o greek_a father_n i_o say_v interpret_v the_o apostle_n word_n here_o thus_o caten_v oecum_fw-la in_o caten_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v have_v make_v we_o worthy_a and_o give_v we_o the_o grace_n to_o be_v worthy_a and_o s._n basil_n in_o orat_fw-la liturg._n make_v both_o greek_a word_n all_o one_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thou_o have_v make_v we_o worthy_a to_o be_v minister_n of_o thy_o holy_a altar_n and_o anon_o after_o make_v we_o worthy_a for_o this_o ministry_n and_o s._n chrisost_o upon_o the_o apostle_n place_n god_n do_v not_o only_o give_v we_o society_n with_o the_o saint_n but_o make_v we_o also_o worthy_a to_o receive_v so_o great_a dignity_n and_o here_o be_v a_o goodly_a consideration_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o that_o do_v in_o deed_n by_o his_o grace_n make_v we_o worthy_a of_o so_o great_a thing_n who_o otherwise_o be_v most_o unworthy_a vile_a and_o abject_a which_o make_v of_o we_o worthy_a be_v express_v by_o the_o say_a greek_a word_n more_o than_o by_o the_o latin_a mereri_fw-la because_o it_o declare_v whence_o our_o merit_n and_o worthiness_n procee_v to_o wit_n lairone_fw-la ho._n de_fw-fr cruee_n &_o lairone_fw-la of_o god_n both_o which_o s._n chrysostom_n express_v excellent_o thus_o when_o he_o bring_v in_o publican_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v defame_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o magnify_v it_o also_o with_o great_a honour_n show_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o lord_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o have_v make_v even_o unworthy_a person_n to_o be_v so_o much_o better_a mererentur_fw-la ut_fw-la etiam_fw-la illius_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la gloriam_fw-la mererentur_fw-la that_o they_o shall_v deserve_v even_o the_o glory_n of_o that_o dignity_n and_o occumenius_n say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n glory_n 〈◊〉_d glory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v his_o servant_n worthy_a of_o such_o good_a thing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v their_o glory_n 〈◊〉_d glory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o have_v be_v make_v worthy_a of_o such_o thing_n in_o 2_o thess_n 1._o 19_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v equivalent_a word_n to_o signify_v merit_n which_o you_o suppress_v as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v so_o likewise_o we_o may_v tell_v you_o of_o other_o word_n and_o phrase_n that_o do_v plain_o import_v and_o signify_v merit_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v ecclesiastici_fw-la 16._o every_o man_n shall_v find_v according_a to_o his_o work_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d budee_fw-mi both_o your_o master_n and_o we_o in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o find_v be_v propre_o to_o receive_v for_o that_o which_o a_o man_n have_v give_v or_o labour_v &_o to_o requite_v you_o with_o some_o profane_a authority_n because_o you_o delight_n much_o in_o that_o kind_n the_o whole_a oration_n of_o demosthenes_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_v tell_v you_o the_o same_o now_o to_o receive_v for_o that_o which_o a_o man_n have_v labour_v or_o wrought_v what_o do_v it_o else_o presuppose_v but_o merit_n &_o desert_n it_o be_v a_o common_a phrase_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o god_n will_v judge_v and_o reward_n or_o repay_v according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n 22._o ecclici_fw-la 16._o psal_n 61._o apoc._n 22._o do_v not_o this_o include_v merit_n &_o demerit_n of_o work_n but_o i_o wot_n not_o how_o nor_o wherefore_o in_o this_o case_n you_o translate_v sometime_o deed_n for_o work_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o will_v reward_n every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o deed_n and_o again_o you_o see_v then_o how_o that_o of_o deed_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o not_o of_o faith_n only_o 20_o i_o know_v you_o will_v tell_v we_o that_o you_o use_v to_o say_v deed_n or_o work_n indifferent_o as_o also_o you_o may_v say_v that_o you_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o just_a and_o righteous_a meet_a and_o worthy_a but_o use_v both_o indifferent_o to_o the_o ignorant_a this_o be_v a_o fair_a answer_n and_o shall_v soon_o persuade_v they_o but_o they_o that_o see_v further_o must_v needs_o suspect_v you_o till_o you_o give_v a_o good_a reason_n of_o your_o do_v for_o the_o controversy_n be_v of_o faith_n and_o work_n of_o justice_n and_o justification_n by_o work_n of_o the_o worthiness_n or_o valour_n of_o work_n why_o do_v you_o not_o precise_o keep_v these_o term_n pertain_v to_o the_o controversy_n the_o greek_a word_n be_v always_o pregnant_a in_o that_o signification_n why_o shall_v you_o once_o translate_v the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deed_n rather_o than_o work_n you_o know_v it_o be_v propre_o work_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d deed_n it_o be_v very_o good_a in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n to_o be_v precise_a 1556._o prefat_n in_o no._n test_n 1556._o beza_n make_v it_o a_o great_a fault_n in_o the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translator_n that_o he_o express_v one_o greek_a word_n in_o latin_a diverse_a way_n you_o chop_n &_o change_n signification_n here_o and_o there_o as_o you_o listen_v and_o you_o think_v you_o satisfy_v the_o reader_n marvellous_a well_o if_o sometime_o you_o say_v idol_n and_o not_o always_o image_n sometime_o just_a and_o not_o always_o righteous_a &_o if_o in_o other_o place_n you_o say_v work_n or_o if_o one_o bible_n have_v work_n where_o a_o other_o have_v deed_n you_o think_v this_o be_v very_o well_o and_o will_v answer_n all_o the_o matter_n sufficient_o god_n and_o your_o conscience_n be_v judge_v herein_o and_o let_v the_o wise_a reader_n consider_v it_o deep_o the_o least_o thing_n that_o we_o demand_v the_o reason_n of_o rather_o than_o charge_v you_o withal_o be_v why_o your_o church_n bible_n say_v in_o the_o place_n before_o allege_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n which_o will_v reward_n every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o deed_n and_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o deed_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o whereas_o you_o know_v the_o greek_a be_v more_o pregnant_a for_o we_o then_o so_o and_o the_o matter_n of_o controversy_n will_v better_o appear_v on_o our_o side_n if_o you_o say_v thus_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n which_o will_v reward_n every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o 21_o but_o will_v you_o not_o yet_o see_v merit_n and_o meritorious_a work_n in_o the_o scripture_n i_o marvel_v your_o skill_n in_o the_o greek_a teach_v you_o nothing_o in_o this_o point_n s._n john_n say_v 8._o 2._o epist_n v._o 8._o look_v to_o yourselves_o that_o you_o lose_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v wrought_v but_o that_o you_o may_v receive_v a_o full_a reward_n i_o think_v in_o these_o word_n the_o equivalent_a of_o merit_n be_v easy_o see_v of_o any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o wilful_o blind_a but_o you_o shall_v see_v further_o than_o the_o common_a sort_n for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o greek_a here_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
the_o same_o sentence_n and_o not_o one_o word_n of_o abel_n his_o brother_n in_o that_o speech_n of_o god_n to_o cain_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a or_o what_o coherence_n can_v there_o be_v in_o say_v as_o you_o translate_v sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o thou_o shall_v have_v dominion_n over_o he_o that_o be_v thy_o brother_n but_o if_o we_o say_v thus_o sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n and_o thou_o shall_v have_v dominion_n thereof_o it_o have_v this_o direct_a &_o plain_a sense_n if_o thou_o do_v ill_a sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n ready_a to_o condemn_v thou_o because_o it_o be_v in_o thou_o to_o over-rule_v it_o 10_o now_o if_o against_o the_o coherence_n of_o the_o text_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n you_o pretend_v the_o hebrew_n grammar_n forsooth_o as_o not_o bear_v such_o construction_n not_o to_o trouble_v the_o common_a reader_n that_o can_v not_o judge_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o yet_o full_o to_o satisfy_v every_o man_n even_o of_o common_a understanding_n we_o request_v here_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o to_o tell_v we_o true_o according_a to_o their_o knowledge_n and_o skill_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whether_o the_o hebrew_n construction_n or_o point_n of_o grammar_n be_v not_o all_o one_o in_o these_o word_n sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n &_o in_o these_o the_o desire_n thereof_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o thou_o &_o thou_o shall_v rule_v over_o it_o if_o they_o say_v as_o they_o must_v needs_o that_o the_o hebrew_n construction_n or_o syntaxis_fw-la be_v all_o one_o then_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o hebrew_n bear_v the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o &_o therefore_o when_o the_o self_n same_o translation_n of_o they_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o grammar_n in_o the_o former_a but_o translate_v as_o we_o do_v sin_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n a_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v that_o in_o the_o late_a word_n also_o the_o hebrew_n be_v but_o a_o foolish_a pretence_n and_o that_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o translate_n they_o otherwise_o procee_v of_o a_o heretical_a humour_n to_o obscure_v and_o deface_v this_o so_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n for_o man_n free_a will_n 11_o and_o as_o for_o the_o hebrew_n grammar_n in_o this_o point_n be_v it_o not_o for_o trouble_v the_o reader_n we_o can_v tell_v they_o that_o the_o word_n sin_n in_o hebrew_n be_v not_o here_o of_o the_o soeminine_a gender_n as_o they_o suppose_v but_o of_o the_o masculine_a so_o say_v s._n hierom_n express_o upon_o this_o place_n genes_n q._n hebr._n in_o genes_n who_o have_v as_o much_o knowledge_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n as_o all_o these_o new_a doctor_n aben_n ezra_n also_o the_o great_a rabbine_n in_o his_o hebrew_n commentary_n upon_o this_o text_n say_v it_o be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n and_o fiction_n to_o refer_v the_o masculine_a relative_a otherwise_o then_o to_o the_o word_n sin_n which_o though_o else_o where_o it_o be_v the_o feminine_a gender_n yet_o here_o it_o be_v a_o masculine_a according_a to_o that_o rule_n of_o the_o grammarian_n quinquar-boreur_a quinquar-boreur_a that_o the_o doubtful_a gender_n must_v be_v discern_v by_o the_o verb_n adiective_n pronowne_n or_o participle_n join_v with_o the_o same_o as_o the_o say_a hebrew_n doctor_n do_v in_o the_o word_n paradise_n gen._n 2._o which_o there_o by_o the_o pronowne_n he_o pronounce_v to_o be_v a_o feminine_a though_o else_o where_o a_o masculine_a last_o if_o the_o word_n sin_n be_v here_o and_o always_o only_o afeminine_a &_o never_o a_o masculine_a yet_o they_o have_v little_a skill_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n that_o think_v it_o strange_a to_o match_n masculine_v and_o feminine_n together_o in_o very_o good_a and_o grammatical_a construction_n whereof_o they_o may_v see_v a_o whole_a chapter_n in_o sancte_n pagninus_n with_o this_o title_n foeminea_fw-la masculeis_fw-la iuncta_fw-la that_o be_v feminine_n join_v with_o masculine_v 12_o now_o for_o the_o last_o refuge_n if_o they_o will_v say_v all_o this_o need_v not_o because_o in_o other_o their_o bible_n it_o be_v as_o we_o will_v have_v it_o we_o tell_v they_o they_o must_v justify_v and_o make_v good_a all_o their_o translation_n because_o the_o people_n read_v all_o and_o be_v abuse_v by_o all_o and_o all_o come_v forth_o with_o privilege_n print_v by_o the_o q._n printer_n etc._n etc._n if_o they_o will_v not_o let_v they_o confess_v the_o fault_n and_o call_v they_o in_o and_o tell_v we_o which_o translation_n or_o translation_n they_o will_v stand_v unto_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o must_v be_v content_a to_o hear_v of_o all_o indifferent_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v cause_n and_o occasion_n to_o touch_v they_o 13_o again_o they_o translate_v in_o some_o of_o their_o bibles_n against_o free_a will_n 1580._o no._n test_n 1580._o thus_o christ_n when_o we_o be_v yet_o of_o no_o strength_n die_v for_o the_o ungodly_a ro._n 5._o v._n 6._o the_o apostle_n word_n do_v not_o signify_v that_o we_o have_v no_o strength_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o that_o we_o be_v weak_a feeble_a infirm_a man_n be_v wound_v in_o free_a will_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n as_o he_o that_o in_o the_o gospel_n go_v down_o from_o jerusalem_n to_o jericho_n 10._o luc._n 10._o which_o be_v a_o parable_n of_o this_o thing_n he_o be_v not_o slay_v altogether_o but_o i_o stand_v not_o here_o or_o in_o any_o place_n to_o dispute_v the_o controversy_n that_o be_v do_v else_o where_o this_o only_a i_o say_v because_o *_o 18._o whitaker_n pag._n 18._o they_o false_o hold_v that_o free_a will_n be_v altogether_o lose_v by_o adam_n sin_n therefore_o they_o translate_v according_o when_o we_o have_v no_o strength_n but_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v well_o know_v both_o in_o profane_a author_n and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o special_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n itself_o through_o out_o to_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o weak_a feeble_a sick_a infirm_a alibi_fw-la multi_fw-la inter_fw-la vos_fw-la infirmi_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 11._o v._n 30._o cùm_fw-la infirmor_fw-la tum_fw-la potens_fw-la sum_fw-la 2_o cor._n 12._o v._n 10._o &_o alibi_fw-la look_v i_o through_o the_o new_a testament_n wheresoever_o infirmity_n feebleness_n languish_v and_o the_o like_a be_v speak_v of_o there_o be_v find_v this_o greek_a word_n to_o express_v it_o what_o grecian_a know_v not_o be_v he_o but_o simple_o acquaint_v with_o phrase_n and_o nature_n of_o word_n what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v when_o the_o apostle_n say_v quis_fw-la infirmatur_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la non_fw-la uror_fw-la 29_o 2_o cor._n 11_o 29_o who_o be_v weak_a and_o infirm_a and_o i_o be_o not_o much_o grieve_v shall_v we_o translate_v who_o be_v of_o no_o strength_n etc._n etc._n or_o let_v they_o give_v we_o a_o instance_n where_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o word_n must_v needs_o signify_v of_o no_o strength_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d privatiwm_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_v they_o pretend_v the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n a_o ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a evasion_n we_o ask_v they_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o word_n of_o the_o very_a same_o signification_n which_o be_v compound_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o other_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o infirmity_n and_o feebleness_n yea_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o signify_v no_o strength_n basileae_n lexicon_fw-la magnum_fw-la basileae_n that_o the_o great_a grecian_n say_v it_o be_v not_o speak_v propre_o of_o he_o that_o for_o weakness_n keep_v his_o bed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o of_o he_o that_o be_v il_fw-mi dispose_v and_o distemper_v in_o body_n yet_o the_o etymology_n be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o word_n which_o these_o man_n will_v have_v to_o signify_v he_o that_o have_v no_o strength_n and_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o urge_v the_o etymology_n we_o tell_v they_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v robur_fw-la that_o be_v great_a strength_n such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o strong_a and_o stout_a champion_n and_o so_o the_o etymology_n may_v take_v place_n to_o signify_v a_o man_n of_o no_o great_a strength_n not_o of_o no_o strength_n 209._o pag._n 209._o but_o m._n whitaker_n put_v we_o in_o good_a hope_n they_o will_v not_o stand_v upon_o etymology_n 14_o when_o they_o have_v bereave_v and_o spoil_v a_o man_n of_o his_o free_a will_n &_o leave_v he_o without_o all_o strength_n they_o go_v so_o far_o in_o this_o point_n that_o *_o 27._o beza_n in_o annot_n ro._n 2_o 27._o they_n say_v the_o regenerate_a themselves_o have_v not_o free_a will_v and_o ability_n no_o not_o by_o and_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o keep_v the_o
commandment_n to_o this_o purpose_n they_o translate_v io._n 5_o 3_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d man_z dara_o eius_fw-la gravia_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a for_o in_o say_v they_o be_v not_o heavy_a it_o will_v follow_v they_o may_v be_v keep_v &_o observe_v but_o in_o say_v they_o be_v not_o grevous_a that_o may_v be_v true_a be_v they_o never_o so_o heavy_a or_o impossible_a through_o patience_n as_o when_o a_o man_n can_v not_o do_v as_o he_o will_v yet_o it_o greeve_v he_o not_o be_v patient_a and_o wise_a because_o he_o be_v content_a to_o do_v as_o he_o can_v and_o be_v able_a therefore_o do_v they_o choose_v to_o translate_v that_o the_o commandment_n be_v not_o grevous_a where_o the_o apostle_n say_v rather_o they_o be_v not_o heavy_a much_o more_o agreable_o to_o our_o saviour_n word_n my_o burden_n be_v light_a and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o moses_n deu._n 30._o this_o commandment_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o above_o thou_o that_o be_v beyond_o thy_o reach_n but_o the_o word_n be_v very_o near_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o and_o to_o the_o common_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o be_v heavy_a beza_n will_v say_v somewhat_o in_o his_o commentary_n how_o the_o commandment_n be_v heavy_a or_o light_a but_o his_o conclusion_n be_v against_o free_a will_n and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o perfection_n in_o this_o life_n inveigh_v against_o they_o that_o will_v prove_v it_o out_o of_o this_o place_n which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v but_o he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v plain_o that_o we_o can_v not_o keep_v the_o commandment_n which_o the_o holy_a doctor_n have_v long_a since_o condemn_v &_o abhor_v as_o most_o absurd_a that_o god_n shall_v command_v that_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n which_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v do_v 15_o thus_o have_v take_v away_o free_a will_v to_o do_v good_a and_o possibility_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o all_o merit_n or_o valour_n and_o efficacy_n of_o good_a work_n their_o next_o conclusion_n be_v that_o we_o have_v no_o true_a justice_n or_o righteousness_n in_o we_o but_o a_o imputative_a justice_n that_o be_v christ_n justice_n impute_v to_o we_o be_v we_o never_o so_o foul_a and_o filthy_a in_o our_o soul_n so_o that_o we_o believe_v only_o and_o by_o faith_n apprehend_v christ_n justice_n for_o this_o purpose_n they_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o english_a bible_n thus_o chap_n xi_o heretical_a translation_n for_o imputative_a justice_n against_o true_a inherent_a justice_n 1_o one_o place_n may_v suffice_v in_o steed_n of_o many_o where_o beza_n do_v protest_v that_o his_o add_v or_o alteration_n of_o the_o text_n be_v special_o against_o the_o execrable_a error_n of_o inherent_a justice_n 18._o annot._n in_o rom._n 5_o 18._o which_o he_o say_v be_v to_o be_v avoid_v as_o nothing_o more_o his_o false_a translation_n thus_o our_o english_a bezites_n and_o caluinist_n follow_v in_o their_o bibles_n likewise_o then_o as_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o 5._o rom._n 5._o the_o fault_n come_v on_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n so_o by_o the_o justify_n of_o one_o the_o benefit_n abound_v towards_o all_o man_n to_o the_o justification_n of_o life_n where_o there_o be_v add_v to_o the_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n six_o word_n and_o the_o same_o so_o wilful_o and_o voluntary_o that_o by_o the_o three_o first_o they_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v sin_n come_v on_o all_o man_n by_o adam_n and_o they_o be_v make_v sinner_n in_o deed_n by_o the_o three_o late_a they_o make_v he_o say_v not_o that_o justice_n or_o righteousness_n come_v likewise_o on_o all_o man_n by_o christ_n to_o make_v they_o just_a in_o deed_n but_o that_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n justice_n abound_v towards_o they_o as_o be_v impute_v forsooth_o unto_o they_o whereas_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o add_v to_o the_o text_n which_o yet_o be_v intolerable_a so_o much_o and_o in_o so_o doubtful_a a_o case_n they_o shall_v at_o the_o least_o have_v make_v the_o case_n equal_a as_o the_o apostle_n himself_o teach_v they_o to_o do_v in_o the_o very_a next_o sentence_n say_v thus_o for_o as_o by_o one_o man_n disobedience_n many_o be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o shall_v many_o also_o be_v make_v righteous_a so_o they_o translate_v rather_o than_o be_v make_v just_a for_o they_o be_v the_o loath_a man_n in_o the_o world_n to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v make_v just_a for_o fear_v of_o justice_n inherent_a in_o we_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v never_o so_o plain_a as_o here_o we_o see_v the_o apostle_n make_v the_o case_n like_o that_o we_o be_v make_v just_a by_o christ_n as_o we_o be_v make_v sinner_n by_o adam_n 2_o and_o it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v how_o beza_n shift_v from_o one_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n justify_v or_o make_v just_a to_o a_o other_o absoluitur_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d absolui_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d absoluitur_fw-la sometime_o to_o be_v justify_v be_v to_o be_v pronounce_v quit_v from_o all_o sin_n or_o declare_v just_a before_o god_n judgement_n seat_n &_o so_o he_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o text_n act._n 13._o v._n 39_o and_o as_o though_o his_o guilty_a conscience_n be_v afraid_a of_o a_o blow_n he_o say_v he_o flee_v not_o the_o term_n of_o justify_v or_o justification_n because_o he_o use_v it_o in_o other_o place_n he_o do_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o then_o his_o commentary_n supply_v the_o turn_n as_o ro._n 2._o v._n 13._o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v righteous_n before_o god_n so_o they_o delight_v to_o translate_v rather_o than_o just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v ius_fw-la tified_n pronunctabuntur_fw-la justi_fw-la pronunctabuntur_fw-la that_o be_v say_v beza_n shall_v be_v pronounce_v just_a the_o apostle_n must_v needs_o say_v by_o the_o coherence_n and_o consequence_n of_o his_o word_n not_o the_o hearer_n be_v just_a but_o the_o doer_n shall_v be_v just_a or_o justify_v beza_n will_v in_o no_o case_n have_v it_o so_o but_o either_o in_o text_n or_o commentary_n make_v the_o apostle_n say_v as_o himself_o imagine_v 20._o annot._fw-la ro._n 3._o v._n 20._o yet_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o protest_v very_o solemn_o that_o to_o be_v justify_v be_v not_o to_o be_v pronounce_v or_o account_v just_a but_o rather_o to_o be_v just_a in_o deed_n and_o that_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n ro._n 5._o v._n 19_o who_o make_v it_o all_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v justify_v &_o to_o be_v make_v just_a and_o again_o by_o this_o reason_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v manifest_o repugnant_a to_o god_n justice_n to_o account_v he_o for_o just_a that_o be_v not_o just_a and_o therefore_o that_o man_n in_o deed_n be_v make_v just_a thus_o beza_n will_v you_o not_o think_v he_o be_v come_v to_o be_v of_o our_o opinion_n but_o he_o revolt_v again_o &_o interprete_v all_o these_o goodly_a word_n in_o his_o old_a sense_n qualitas_fw-la non_fw-la quasi_fw-la nobis_fw-la indatur_fw-la qualitas_fw-la say_v not_o that_o any_o quality_n be_v inward_o give_v unto_o we_o of_o which_o we_o be_v name_v just_a but_o because_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n free_o by_o faith_n then_o at_o the_o least_o we_o be_v true_o justify_v 2._o annot._n in_o ro._n 4._o v._n 2._o not_o so_o neither_o but_o faith_n say_v he_o be_v a_o instrument_n wherewith_o we_o apprehend_v christ_n our_o justice_n so_o that_o we_o have_v no_o more_o justice_n in_o we_o than_o we_o have_v glory_n for_o glory_n also_o we_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n 3_o for_o this_o purpose_n both_o he_o and_o the_o english_a bibles_n translate_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d pro_fw-la iustitia_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v repute_v to_o he_o for_o justice_n ro._n 4._o v._n 3._o &_o 9_o where_o he_o interprete_v for_o justice_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o loco_fw-la vice_n &_o loco_fw-la in_o the_o steed_n &_o place_n of_o justice_n so_o also_o take_v away_o true_a inherent_a justice_n even_o from_o abraham_n himself_o but_o to_o admit_v their_o translation_n which_o notwithstanding_o in_o their_o sense_n be_v most_o false_a must_v it_o needs_o signify_v not_o true_a inherent_a justice_n because_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o be_v repute_v for_o justice_n do_v such_o speech_n import_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o deed_n but_o be_v only_o repute_v so_o then_o if_o we_o say_v this_o shall_v be_v repute_v to_o thou_o for_o sin_n for_o a_o great_a benefit_n
and_o so_o forth_o it_o shall_v signify_v it_o be_v no_o sin_n in_o deed_n nor_o great_a benefit_n peccatum_fw-la reputabitur_fw-la tibi_fw-la in_o peccatum_fw-la but_o let_v they_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o scripture_n use_v to_o speak_v of_o sin_n &_o of_o justice_n alike_o it_o shall_v be_v sin_n in_o thou_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o unto_o thou_o as_o they_o translate_v bibl._n 1577_o or_o as_o s._n hierom_n translate_v it_o shall_v be_v repute_v to_o thou_o for_o sin_n deut._n c._n 23_o &_o 24._o and_o as_o themselves_o translate_v it_o shall_v be_v righteousness_n unto_o thou_o before_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n &_o again_o deut._n c._n 6._o this_o shall_v be_v our_o righteousness_n before_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n if_o we_o keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n as_o he_o have_v command_v us._n if_o then_o justice_n only_o be_v repute_v sin_n also_o be_v only_o repute_v if_o sin_n be_v in_o we_o in_o deed_n justice_n be_v in_o we_o in_o deed_n 4_o again_o the_o greek_a father_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o to_o be_v repute_v unto_o justice_n photius_n oecum_fw-la in_o caten_v photius_n be_v to_o be_v true_a justice_n in_o deed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d interpret_n s._n paul_n word_n in_o greek_a thus_o abraham_n obtain_v justice_n abraham_n be_v justify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o be_v say_v they_o it_o be_v repute_v he_o to_o justice_n do_v not_o s._n james_n say_v the_o like_a c._n 2._o v._n 23_o testify_v that_o in_o that_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o work_n the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v that_o say_v it_o be_v repute_v he_o to_o justice_n gen._n 15._o v._n 6._o in_o which_o word_n of_o genesis_n where_o these_o word_n be_v first_o write_v by_o moses_n in_o the_o hebrew_n there_o be_v not_o for_o justice_n or_o in_o steed_n of_o justice_n which_o beza_n plead_v upon_o by_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n but_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o god_n repute_v it_o unto_o he_o justice_n though_o here_o also_o the_o english_a bibles_n add_v for_o which_o precise_o translate_n the_o hebrew_n they_o shall_v not_o do_v special_o when_o they_o mean_v it_o be_v so_o count_v or_o repute_v for_o justice_n that_o it_o be_v not_o justice_n in_o deed_n 5_o but_o as_o for_o either_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a word_n that_o be_v here_o use_v to_o repute_v or_o account_n they_o be_v then_o use_v when_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o in_o deed_n and_o not_o only_o so_o repute_v as_o psal_n 118._o octonatio_fw-la samec_n i_o have_v repute_v or_o account_v all_o the_o sinner_n of_o the_o earth_n prevaricator_n or_o transgressor_n praevaricantes_fw-la reputavi_fw-la 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o cor._n 4._o so_o do_v the_o septuaginta_fw-la take_v the_o hebrew_n word_n and_o read_v it_o and_o s._n paul_n so_o let_v a_o man_n repute_n or_o account_v we_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n let_v they_o go_v now_o &_o say_v that_o neither_o they_o be_v sinner_n in_o deed_n nor_o these_o christ_n minister_n in_o deed_n because_o they_o be_v repute_v for_o such_o let_v they_o say_v the_o child_n of_o the_o promise_n be_v not_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o the_o apostle_n say_v ro._n 9_o v._n 8._o they_o be_v repute_v for_o the_o seed_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o protestant_n will_v have_v it_o so_o to_o be_v take_v at_o the_o least_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n 6_o again_o where_o s._n paul_n say_v 2_o cor._n 5._o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n in_o he_o they_o in_o their_o first_o translation_n intolerable_o corrupt_v it_o thus_o that_o we_o by_o his_o mean_n shall_v be_v that_o righteousness_n 〈◊〉_d bib._n 1562._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o before_o god_n be_v allow_v who_o teach_v they_o to_o translate_v so_o dissolute_o justitia_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o righteousness_n which_o before_o god_n be_v allow_v do_v not_o their_o error_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v that_o god_n repute_v and_o account_v we_o for_o just_a though_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n most_o foul_a sinner_n and_o that_o our_o justice_n be_v none_o at_o all_o in_o we_o yet_o be_v allow_v and_o accept_v before_o he_o for_o justice_n and_o righteousness_n 7_o again_o to_o this_o purpose_n 6._o 1_o eph._n v._o 6._o they_o make_v s._n paul_n say_v that_o god_n have_v make_v we_o accept_v or_o free_o accept_v in_o his_o belove_a son_n as_o they_o make_v the_o angel_n in_o s._n luke_n say_v to_o our_o lady_n haile_o free_o belove_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o take_v away_o all_o grace_n inherent_a &_o resident_a in_o the_o b._n virgin_n or_o in_o we_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n word_n signify_v that_o we_o be_v true_o make_v gracious_a or_o grateful_a &_o acceptable_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v inward_o endue_v &_o beautify_v with_o grace_n &_o the_o virtue_n procede_v thereof_o &_o consequent_o be_v holy_a in_o deed_n before_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n &_o not_o only_o so_o accept_v or_o repute_v as_o they_o imagine_v if_o they_o know_v not_o the_o true_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n &_o if_o their_o heresy_n will_v suffer_v they_o to_o learn_v it_o let_v they_o hear_v s._n chrysostom_n not_o only_o a_o famous_a greek_a doctor_n but_o a_o excellent_a interpreter_n of_o all_o s._n paul_n epistle_n who_o in_o this_o place_n put_v such_o force_n and_o significancie_n in_o the_o greek_a word_n that_o he_o say_v thus_o by_o a_o allusion_n and_o distinction_n of_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o say_v not_o which_o he_o free_o give_v we_o but_o wherein_o he_o make_v we_o grateful_a that_o be_v not_o only_o deliver_v we_o from_o sin_n but_o also_o make_v we_o belove_v and_o amiable_a make_v our_o soul_n beautiful_a grateful_a such_o as_o the_o angel_n and_o archangel_n be_v desirous_a to_o see_v and_o such_o as_o himself_o be_v in_o love_n withal_o according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o psalm_n the_o king_n shall_v desire_v or_o be_v in_o love_n with_o thy_o beauty_n so_o s._n chrysostom_n &_o after_o he_o theophylacte_n who_o with_o many_o mo_z word_n &_o similitude_n explicate_v this_o greek_a word_n and_o this_o make_n of_o the_o soul_n gracious_a and_o beautiful_a inward_o true_o and_o inherent_o 8_o and_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o the_o adversary_n if_o the_o like_a greek_a word_n be_v not_o of_o that_o form_n and_o nature_n to_o signify_v so_o much_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v worthy_a to_o make_v meet_v and_o whether_o he_o who_o god_n make_v worthy_a or_o meet_v or_o grateful_a just_a and_o holy_a be_v not_o so_o in_o very_a deed_n but_o by_o acceptation_n only_o if_o not_o in_o deed_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d than_o god_n make_v he_o no_o better_a than_o he_o be_v before_o but_o only_o accept_v he_o for_o better_a if_o he_o be_v so_o in_o deed_n than_o the_o apostle_n word_n signify_v not_o to_o make_v accept_v but_o to_o make_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v by_o god_n grace_n sanctify_v and_o justify_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v accept_v for_o such_o purity_n virtue_n and_o justice_n as_o be_v in_o he_o 9_o again_o for_o this_o purpose_n dan._n 6_o 22._o they_o will_v not_o translate_v according_a to_o chaldee_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d greek_n and_o latin_a justice_n be_v find_v in_o i_o but_o they_o alter_v it_o thus_o my_o justice_n be_v find_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o other_o of_o they_o my_o unguiltinesse_n be_v find_v out_o to_o draw_v it_o from_o inherent_a justice_n which_o be_v in_o daniel_n 10_o again_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o spot_n of_o the_o same_o infection_n that_o they_o translate_v thus_o as_o david_n describe_v the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o man_n unto_o who_o god_n impute_v righteousness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ro._n 4_o 6._o as_o though_o impute_a righteousness_n be_v the_o description_n of_o blessedness_n they_o know_v the_o greek_a do_v not_o signify_v to_o describe_v i_o will_v once_o see_v they_o precise_a in_o follow_a the_o greek_a and_o the_o hebrew_n if_o not_o we_o must_v look_v to_o their_o finger_n chap._n xii_o heretical_a translation_n for_o special_a faith_n vain_a security_n and_o only_a faith_n all_o other_o mean_n of_o salvation_n be_v thus_o take_v away_o their_o only_a &_o extreme_a refuge_n be_v only_a faith_n and_o the_o same_o not_o the_o christian_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o such_o like_a but_o a_o special_a faith_n and_o confidence_n whereby_o every_o man_n must_v assure_o believe_v that_o himself_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o one_o
that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n omniporencie_n or_o of_o any_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o of_o all_o whole_o and_o entire_o and_o perfect_o that_o be_v nothing_o without_o charity_n this_o be_v beza_n tota_fw-la fides_fw-la whole_a faith_n think_v by_o this_o translation_n to_o exempt_v from_o the_o apostle_n word_n their_o special_a justify_n faith_n &_o wrestle_v to_o that_o purpose_n in_o his_o annotation_n against_o pighius_fw-la &_o other_o catholic_a doctor_n whereas_o every_o man_n of_o small_a skill_n may_v see_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o apostle_n name_v all_o faith_n as_o he_o do_v all_o knowledge_n &_o all_o mystery_n comprehend_v all_o sort_n of_o the_o one_o &_o of_o the_o other_o all_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n all_o kind_n of_o mystery_n all_o faith_n whatsoever_o christian_n catholic_a historical_a or_o special_a which_o two_o late_a be_v heretical_a term_n new_o devise_v 7_o and_o i_o will_v have_v any_o of_o the_o bezites_n give_v i_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n why_o he_o translate_v totam_fw-la fidem_fw-la and_o not_o also_o totam_fw-la scientiam_fw-la undoubted_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n but_o the_o heresy_n of_o special_a and_o only_a faith_n and_o again_o why_o he_o translate_v jaco._n two_o 22._o thou_o see_v that_o faith_n be_v administra_fw-la a_o helper_n of_o his_o work_n and_o expound_v it_o thus_o faith_n be_v a_o efficient_a cause_n and_o fruiteful_a of_o good_a work_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n word_n be_v plain_a that_o faith_n wrought_v together_o with_o his_o work_n yea_o and_o that_o his_o faith_n be_v by_o work_n make_v perfect_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v impudent_a handle_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v work_n the_o fruit_n only_o and_o effect_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v your_o heresy_n 8_o which_o heresy_n also_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o to_o suppress_v the_o excellency_n of_o charity_n which_o the_o apostle_n give_v it_o above_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o gift_n whatsoever_o in_o these_o word_n and_o yet_o i_o show_v you_o a_o more_o excellent_a way_n 1_o cor._n 12._o v._n 31._o he_o in_o one_o edition_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o year_n 1556._o translate_v thus_o behold_v moreover_o also_o i_o show_v you_o a_o way_n most_o diligent_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o cold_a stuff_n be_v this_o and_o how_o impertinent_a in_o a_o other_o edition_n a_o 1565._o he_o mend_v it_o thus_o and_o beside_o i_o show_v you_o a_o way_n to_o excellency_n in_o neither_o of_o both_o express_v the_o comparison_n of_o preeminence_n &_o excellency_n that_o charity_n have_v in_o the_o apostle_n word_n and_o in_o all_o the_o chapter_n follow_a wherein_o you_o do_v well_o for_o your_o credit_n not_o to_o follow_v he_o no_o not_o your_o bezites_n themselves_o but_o to_o translate_v after_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a interpreter_n as_o it_o have_v always_o be_v read_v and_o understand_v in_o the_o church_n 9_o luther_n be_v so_o impudent_a in_o this_o case_n that_o because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o plain_o enough_o for_o only_a faith_n he_o thrust_v only_o into_o the_o text_n of_o his_o translation_n *_o 1551._o luther_n to_o 2_o fol._n 405._o edi_fw-la wittemb_v a_o 1551._o as_o himself_o witness_v you_o dare_v not_o hitherto_o presume_v so_o far_o in_o this_o question_n of_o only_a faith_n though_o *_o 1562._o act._n 9_o 22._o bib._n 1577._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 25._o 2_o par._n 36_o 8._o 2_o cor._n 5_o 21._o 1_o pet_n 2_o 13_o in_o the_o bib._n 1562._o in_o other_o controversy_n you_o have_v do_v the_o like_a as_o be_v show_v in_o their_o place_n but_o i_o will_v ask_v you_o a_o small_a matter_n which_o in_o word_n and_o show_v you_o may_v perhaps_o easy_o answer_n but_o in_o your_o conscience_n there_o will_v remain_v a_o gnaw_a worm_n in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o our_o saviour_n require_v the_o people_n faith_n when_o he_o heal_v they_o of_o corporal_a disease_n only_o why_o do_v you_o so_o glad_o translate_v thus_o 48._o mar._n 10_o 52._o luc._n 18_o 42._o etc._n etc._n 8._o v._n 48._o thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o rather_o than_o thus_o thy_o faith_n have_v heal_v thou_o or_o make_v the_o whole_a be_v it_o not_o by_o join_v these_o word_n together_o to_o make_v it_o sound_v in_o english_a ear_n that_o faith_n save_v or_o justifi_v a_o man_n in_o so_o much_o that_o beza_n note_v in_o the_o margin_n thus_o fides_fw-la saluat_fw-la that_o be_v faith_n save_v &_o your_o geneva_n bibles_n in_o that_o place_n where_o it_o can_v not_o be_v take_v for_o faith_n that_o justifi_v because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o party_n faith_n but_o her_o father_n that_o christ_n require_v there_o also_o translate_v thus_o believe_v only_o and_o she_o shall_v be_v save_v 50._o luc._n 8_o 50._o which_o translation_n though_o very_o false_a and_o impertinent_a for_o justify_v faith_n as_o you_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v by_o translate_n it_o otherwise_o in_o your_o other_o bible_n westmester_n see_v goughs_n sermon_n and_o tom_n son_n answer_v to_o the_o l._n abbot_n of_o westmester_n yet_o in_o deed_n you_o must_v needs_o maintain_v &_o hold_v it_o for_o good_a while_o you_o allege_v this_o place_n for_o only_a faith_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o your_o write_n 10_o this_o then_o you_o see_v be_v a_o fallacy_n when_o faith_n only_o be_v require_v to_o the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n as_o in_o many_o such_o place_n though_o not_o in_o all_o there_o by_o translation_n to_o make_v it_o sound_v a_o justify_n faith_n as_o though_o faith_n only_o be_v require_v to_o the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n whereas_o that_o faith_n be_v of_o christ_n omnipotency_n only_o &_o power_n 2._o annot._n in_o 1_o cor._n 13_o 2._o which_o beza_n confess_v may_v be_v in_o the_o devil_n themselves_o and_o be_v far_o from_o the_o faith_n that_o justifi_v if_o you_o say_v the_o greek_a signify_v as_o you_o translate_v it_o do_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o it_o signify_v also_o very_o common_o to_o be_v heal_v corporal_o as_o by_o your_o own_o translation_n in_o these_o place_n 1577._o bib._n 1577._o marc._n 5._o v._n 28._o marc._n 6._o v._n 36._o luc._n 8._o v._n 36._o &_o v._o 51._o where_o you_o translate_v i_o shall_v be_v whole_a they_o be_v heal_v he_o be_v heal_v she_o shall_v be_v make_v whole_a and_o why_o do_v you_o here_o translate_v so_o because_o you_o know_v to_o be_v save_v import_v rather_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o wit_n salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o therefore_o when_o faith_n be_v join_v withal_o you_o translate_v rather_o save_v then_o heal_v though_o the_o place_n be_v mean_v of_o bodily_a health_n only_o to_o insinuate_v by_o all_o mean_v your_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n chap._n xiii_o heretical_a translation_n against_o penance_n and_o satisfaction_n upon_o the_o heresy_n of_o only_a faith_n justify_v and_o save_v a_o man_n follow_v the_o denial_n of_o all_o penance_n &_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n which_o beza_n so_o abhor_v annot_n in_o mat._n 3._o v._n 2._o that_o he_o make_v protestation_n that_o he_o avoid_v these_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d poenitentia_fw-la and_o poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la of_o purpose_n and_o that_o he_o will_v always_o use_v for_o they_o in_o translate_n the_o greek_a word_n resipiscentia_fw-la and_o resipiscere_fw-la which_o he_o do_v observe_v perhaps_o but_o that_o sometime_o he_o be_v worse_a than_o his_o promise_n 8._o act._n 26.20_o in_o no._n testan_n 1556._o and_o in_o his_o late_a translation_n 1565._o mat_n 3._o v._o 8._o luc._n 3._o v._n 8._o translate_n most_o false_o and_o heretical_o for_o resipiscentia_fw-la resipiscentes_fw-la so_o that_o your_o english_a bezites_n themselves_o be_v ashamed_a to_o translate_v after_o he_o who_o otherwise_o follow_v his_o rule_n for_o the_o most_o part_n translate_n resipiscentia_fw-la amendment_n of_o life_n &_o resipiscite_fw-la amend_v your_o life_n &_o the_o other_o english_a bible_n when_o they_o translat_v best_a say_v repentance_n &_o repent_v but_o none_o of_o they_o all_o once_o have_v the_o word_n penance_n and_o do_v penance_n which_o in_o most_o place_n be_v the_o very_a true_a translation_n according_a to_o the_o very_a circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n and_o use_v of_o the_o greek_a word_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n poenitentiam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agere_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la and_o the_o ancient_a latin_a translation_n thereof_o and_o all_o the_o father_n read_v thereof_o and_o their_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o which_o four_o point_n i_o think_v not_o amiss_o brief_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o these_o word_n which_o they_o of_o purpose_n will_v not_o express_v to_o avoid_v the_o term_n of_o penance_n and_o do_v penance_n egissent_fw-la that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o do_v penance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d poenitentiam_fw-la egissent_fw-la 2_o first_o that_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n do_v give_v it_o so_o to_o signify_v we_o read_v in_o saint_n matthew_n c._n 11_o v._o 21._o if_o in_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n have_v be_v wrought_v the_o miracle_n that_o have_v be_v wrought_v in_o you_o they_o have_v do_v penance_n in_o hearecloth_n or_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n long_o ago_o and_o in_o s._n luc._n c._n 10._o v._n 13._o they_o have_v do_v penance_n sit_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n i_o beseech_v you_o these_o circunstance_n of_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n adjoin_v do_v they_o signify_v penance_n and_o affliction_n of_o the_o body_n or_o only_a amendment_n of_o life_n as_o you_o will_v have_v the_o word_n to_o signify_v s._n basil_n say_v in_o ps_n 29._o sackcloth_n make_v for_o penance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o father_n in_o old_a time_n sit_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n do_v penance_n unless_o you_o will_v translate_v s._n basil_n also_o after_o your_o fashion_n who_o you_o can_v not_o any_o way_n translate_v but_o the_o sense_n must_v needs_o be_v penance_n &_o do_v penance_n again_o s._n paul_n say_v you_o be_v make_v sorry_a to_o penance_n or_o 9_o 2_o co._n 7_o 9_o to_o repentance_n say_v which_o you_o will_v and_o the_o sorrow_n which_o be_v according_a to_o god_n work_v penance_n or_o repentance_n unto_o salvation_n be_v not_o sorrow_v and_o bitter_a mourning_n &_o affliction_n part_n of_o penance_n do_v the_o incestuous_a man_n who_o s._n paul_n excommunicate_v 5._o 1_o cor._n 5._o and_o afterward_o absolve_v he_o because_o of_o his_o exceed_a sorrow_n and_o tear_n 2._o 2_o cor._n 2._o for_o fear_v lest_o he_o may_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n do_v he_o i_o say_v change_v his_o mind_n only_o or_o amend_v his_o life_n as_o you_o translate_v the_o greek_a word_n and_o interpret_v repentance_n do_v he_o not_o penance_n also_o for_o his_o fault_n 26._o mat._n 3._o luc._n 3._o act._n 26._o enjoin_v of_o the_o apostle_n when_o s._n john_n the_o baptist_n say_v &_o s._n paul_n exhort_v the_o like_a do_v fruit_n worthy_a of_o penance_n or_o as_o you_o translate_v meet_v for_o repentance_n do_v they_o not_o plain_o signify_v penitential_a work_n or_o the_o work_n of_o penance_n which_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n why_o beza_n rather_o translate_v in_o those_o place_n 〈◊〉_d fructus_fw-la dignos_fw-la ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la resipuerint_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v the_o fruit_n meet_v for_o they_o that_o amend_v their_o life_n or_o give_v we_o some_o other_o good_a cause_n o_o you_o bezites_n why_o your_o master_n do_v so_o foul_o falsify_v his_o translation_n 3_o second_o for_o the_o signification_n of_o this_o greek_a word_n in_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o greek_a father_n even_o from_o s._n denys_n the_o aeropagite_n s._n paul_n scholar_n who_o must_v needs_o deduce_v it_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o learn_v it_o of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o they_o use_v this_o word_n for_o that_o penance_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n according_a to_o the_o penitential_a canon_n whereof_o all_o antiquity_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n be_v full_a principio_fw-la ec._n hier._n c._n 3._o in_o principio_fw-la in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n denys_n reckon_v up_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o be_v exclude_v from_o see_v and_o participate_v of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d paenitentes_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n catechuman_n poenitent_o and_o the_o possess_v of_o il_fw-fr spirit_n for_o poenitent_o he_o say_v in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v in_o their_o course_n of_o penance_n or_o have_v not_o yet_o do_v their_o full_a penance_n which_o penance_n s._n augustine_n declare_v thus_o ho._n 27._o inter_fw-la 50_o ho._n and_o ep_v 108._o est_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la gravior_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o more_o grevous_a and_o more_o mournful_a penance_n whereby_o propre_o they_o be_v call_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v poenitentes_fw-la remove_v also_o from_o partake_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o greek_a ecclesiastical_a history_n thus_o 16._o sozom._n li._n 7._o c._n 16._o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a and_o know_v place_n for_o the_o poenitent_o &_o in_o it_o they_o stand_v sorrowful_a &_o as_o it_o be_v mourning_n fabiolae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v s._n hier._n in_o epitaph_n fabiolae_fw-la &_o when_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v end_v be_v not_o make_v partaker_n thereof_o with_o weep_v and_o lamentation_n they_o cast_v themselves_o flat_a on_o the_o ground_n than_o the_o bishop_n weep_v also_o with_o compassion_n lift_v they_o up_o and_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n enjoin_v absolu_v they_o from_o their_o penance_n this_o the_o priest_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n keep_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n even_o until_o our_o time_n 4_o in_o these_o word_n &_o other_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 19_o li._n 5._o c._n 19_o &_o in_o socrates_n greek_a history_n likewise_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o poenitent_o that_o confess_v and_o lament_v their_o sin_n that_o be_v enjoin_v penance_n for_o the_o same_o &_o do_v it_o i_o will_v demand_v of_o our_o english_a grecian_n in_o what_o greek_a word_n they_o express_v all_o this_o do_v they_o it_o not_o in_o the_o word_n which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o &_o which_o therefore_o be_v prove_v most_o evident_o to_o signify_v penance_n &_o do_v penance_n again_o when_o the_o most_o ancient_a council_n of_o laodicea_n can_v 2._o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o time_n of_o penance_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o offender_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o again_o can_v 9_o that_o such_o shall_v not_o communicate_v till_o a_o certain_a time_n but_o after_o they_o have_v do_v penance_n and_o confess_v their_o fault_n then_o to_o be_v receive_v and_o again_o can._n 19_o after_o the_o catechuman_n be_v go_v out_o that_o prayer_n be_v make_v of_o the_o penitent_n or_o they_o that_o be_v in_o do_v penance_n and_o when_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v can_v 12._o about_o shorten_v or_o prolong_v the_o day_n of_o penance_n that_o they_o must_v well_o examine_v their_o purpose_n and_o manner_n of_o do_v penance_n that_o be_v with_o what_o alacrity_n of_o mind_n tear_n patience_n humility_n good_a work_n they_o accomplish_v the_o same_o and_o according_o to_o deal_v more_o merciful_o with_o they_o as_o be_v there_o express_v in_o the_o council_n when_o s._n basil_n can._n 1._o ad_fw-la amphiloch_n speak_v after_o the_o same_o sort_n when_o s._n chrysostom_n call_v the_o sackcloth_n and_o fast_v of_o the_o ninivites_fw-la for_o certain_a day_n tot_fw-la dierum_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la so_o many_o day_n penance_n in_o all_o these_o place_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o our_o english_a grecians_z whether_o these_o speech_n of_o penance_n and_o do_v penance_n be_v not_o express_v by_o the_o say_a greek_a word_n which_o they_o will_v in_o no_o case_n so_o to_o signify_v 5_o or_o i_o will_v also_o ask_v they_o whether_o in_o these_o place_n they_o will_v translate_v repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n where_o there_o be_v mention_v a_o prescript_n time_n of_o satisfaction_n for_o their_o fault_n by_o such_o and_o such_o penal_a mean_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o prescript_n time_n of_o repentance_n or_o amendment_n of_o life_n to_o continue_v so_o long_o and_o no_o long_o if_o not_o then_o must_v it_o needs_o be_v translate_v penance_n and_o do_v penance_n which_o be_v long_o or_o short_a according_a to_o the_o fault_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v the_o same_o i_o may_v repent_v in_o a_o moment_n and_o amend_v my_o life_n at_o one_o instant_a and_o this_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n ought_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o but_o the_o holy_a counsel_n and_o father_n speak_v of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v for_o certain_a year_n or_o day_n and_o to_o be_v release_v at_o the_o bishop_n discretion_n this_o therefore_o be_v penance_n and_o not_o repentance_n only_o or_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o be_v express_v by_o the_o foresay_a greek_a word_n as_o also_o by_o *_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o other_o equivalent_a thereunto_o 6_o i_o omit_v that_o this_o very_a phrase_n to_o do_v penance_n be_v word_n for_o word_n express_v thus_o in_o greek_a 104._o litur_fw-la chrys_n in_o rubricis_fw-la pag._n 69._o 104._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o ausonius_n the_o xpian_a poëte_n who_o i_o may_v as_o well_o allege_v once_o and_o use_v it_o not_o metanoea_n metanoea_n as_o they_o do_v virgil_n terence_n and_o the_o like_a very_o often_o use_v this_o
part_n be_v true_a it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v whether_o all_o the_o aunciént_a father_n err_v or_o rather_o the_o new_a protestant_n as_o it_o be_v more_o than_o madness_n to_o think_v that_o luther_n alone_o may_v see_v the_o truth_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o augustine_n a_o thousand_o cyprian_n a_o thousand_o church_n which_o not_o withstand_v the_o palpable_a absurdity_n thereof_o 101._o pag._n 101._o yet_o m._n whitaker_n avouch_v it_o very_o solemn_o 13_o and_o yet_o again_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o they_o play_v fast_o and_o loose_a at_o their_o pleasure_n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o when_o he_o have_v give_v we_o all_o the_o father_n on_o our_o side_n not_o only_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o penance_n 109._o pag._n 109._o but_o also_o *_o 101._o pag._n 101._o in_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o error_n as_o he_o call_v they_o the_o very_a same_o man_n i_o say_v in_o the_o very_a next_o leave_v almost_o 117._o pag._n 114._o 117._o renew_v m._n juel_n old_a brag_n that_o we_o have_v not_o one_o clear_a sentence_n for_o we_o of_o any_o one_o father_n within_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o again_o that_o the_o same_o faith_n reign_v now_o in_o england_n which_o these_o father_n profess_a what_o faith_n m._n whitaker_n not_o their_o faith_n concern_v penance_n or_o invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o yourself_o confess_v or_o other_o such_o like_a error_n of_o they_o as_o you_o term_v they_o why_o be_v you_o so_o forgetful_a or_o rather_o so_o impudent_a to_o speak_v contrary_n in_o so_o little_a a_o room_n such_o simple_a answer_a will_v not_o serve_v your_o adversary_n learned_a book_n which_o you_o in_o vain_a go_v about_o by_o foolish_a rhetoric_n to_o disgrace_n when_o the_o world_n see_v you_o be_v drive_v to_o the_o brickwall_n &_o either_o can_v say_v nothing_o or_o do_v say_v that_o which_o confute_v itself_o with_o the_o evident_a absurdity_n thereof_o 14_o but_o to_o leave_v m._n whitaker_n who_o be_v a_o simple_a companion_n to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n &_o to_o condemn_v they_o of_o heinous_a error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o penance_n i_o trust_v the_o reader_n see_v by_o the_o former_a discourse_n the_o usual_a ecclesiastical_a signification_n and_o consequent_o both_o the_o true_a and_o false_a translation_n of_o the_o foresay_a greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o that_o they_o must_v or_o may_v always_o be_v translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d penance_n or_o do_v penance_n for_o in_o the_o scripture_n god_n be_v say_v poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o do_v penance_n no_o more_o than_o he_o can_v be_v say_v to_o amend_v his_o life_n as_o the_o protestant_n common_o translate_v this_o word_n therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o more_o prejudice_n against_o our_o translation_n of_o do_v penance_n than_o it_o be_v against_o they_o of_o amendment_n of_o life_n likewise_o when_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o reprobate_n &_o damn_a in_o hell_n agentes_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sap._n 5._o poenitentiam_fw-la agentes_fw-la who_o as_o they_o can_v not_o do_v penance_n propre_o so_o much_o less_o amend_v their_o life_n 15_o moreover_o it_o be_v purposely_o against_o penance_n that_o they_o translate_v amiss_o both_o in_o daniel_n &_o esdras_n 10._o esd_v c_o 9_o dan._n 10._o who_o voluntary_a mourning_n fast_a afflict_v of_o themselves_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o the_o people_n be_v notorious_o set_v forth_o in_o their_o book_n there_o they_o make_v the_o angel_n say_v thus_o to_o daniel_n 1579._o v._o 12._o bib._n 1579._o from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o thou_o do_v set_v thy_o hart_n to_o humble_v thyself_o what_o be_v this_o humble_v himself_o can_v we_o gather_v any_o penance_n thereby_o none_o at_o al._n but_o if_o they_o have_v say_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n greek_n and_o latin_a affligeres_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ut_fw-la te_fw-la affligeres_fw-la from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o thou_o do_v set_v thy_o hart_n to_o afflicy_n thyself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o shall_v easy_o conceive_v work_n of_o penance_n and_o it_o will_v include_v daniel_n mourning_n fast_v from_o flesh_n wine_n and_o other_o meat_n abstain_v from_o ointment_n the_o space_n of_o the_o day_n mention_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n 16_o again_o in_o all_o their_o bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o 1577._o 1579._o they_o make_v esdras_n c._n 9_o 5._o after_o his_o exceed_a great_a penance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v only_o this_o about_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n i_o arise_v up_o from_o my_o heaviness_n neither_o translate_n the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v the_o same_o word_n that_o in_o daniel_n nor_o the_o greek_a which_o signify_v affliction_n and_o humiliation_n 17_o again_o in_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n c._n 3_o 14._o they_o translate_v thus_o you_o have_v say_v it_o be_v but_o vain_a to_o serve_v god_n and_o what_o profit_n be_v it_o that_o we_o have_v keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o walk_v humble_o before_o his_o face_n what_o be_v this_o same_o humble_o when_o we_o say_v in_o english_a he_o go_v humble_o we_o imagine_v or_o conceive_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o he_o be_v a_o humble_a man_n and_o behave_v himself_o humble_o but_o they_o know_v very_o well_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o other_o thing_n and_o if_o it_o have_v please_v they_o to_o have_v translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n full_o and_o significant_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o may_v have_v learn_v by_o conference_n of_o other_o place_n where_o the_o same_o hebrew_n word_n be_v use_v that_o it_o signify_v such_o heaviness_n sadness_n sorowfulnes_n and_o affliction_n as_o man_n express_v by_o black_a mourn_a garment_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n import_v blackness_n darkness_n lower_v &_o the_o like_a which_o be_v far_o more_o than_o walk_v humble_o and_o which_o be_v whole_o suppress_v by_o so_o translate_n see_v the_o psalm_n 34._o v._n 14._o ps_n 37._o v._n 7._o ps_n 41._o v._n 10._o where_o the_o prophet_n use_v many_o word_n &_o speech_n to_o express_v sorrowful_a penance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o for_o that_o which_o in_o latin_a be_v always_o contristatus_fw-la in_o greek_a a_o word_n more_o significant_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o hebrew_n it_o be_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o word_n that_o they_o translate_v humble_o whereas_o in_o deed_n this_o word_n have_v no_o signification_n of_o humility_n propre_o no_o not_o of_o that_o humility_n i_o mean_v which_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v humiliation_n or_o affliction_n as_o the_o greek_a word_n imply_v but_o it_o signify_v propre_o the_o very_a manner_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d countenance_n gesture_n habit_n of_o a_o pensife_n or_o forlorn_a man_n and_o if_o they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o so_o translate_v it_o in_o other_o place_n the_o more_o be_v their_o fault_n that_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n they_o will_v notwithstanding_o suppress_v the_o force_n and_o signification_n thereof_o in_o any_o one_o place_n &_o so_o translate_v it_o that_o the_o reader_n must_v needs_o take_v it_o in_o a_o other_o sense_n and_o can_v not_o possible_o conceive_v that_o which_o the_o word_n import_v for_o to_o walk_v humble_o sound_v in_o all_o english_a ear_n the_o virtue_n of_o humility_n which_o this_o word_n do_v never_o signify_v and_o not_o humility_n or_o humiliation_n by_o affliction_n which_o it_o may_v signify_v though_o secondare_o and_o by_o deduction_n only_o 18_o again_o what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o against_o penance_n &_o satisfaction_n that_o they_o deface_v these_o usual_a and_o know_v word_n of_o daniel_n to_o the_o king_n redimo_fw-la eleemosynis_fw-la peccatatua_n 24._o dan._n 4_o 24._o redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d alter_v and_o translate_n it_o thus_o break_v of_o thy_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n first_o the_o greek_a be_v against_o they_o which_o be_v word_n for_o word_n according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a and_o common_a read_n second_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o chaldee_n word_n which_o they_o translate_v break_v of_o by_o munster_n own_o judgement_n in_o lexico_fw-la chald._n signify_v rather_o and_o more_o principal_o to_o redeem_v three_o the_o other_o word_n which_o they_o translate_v righteousness_n in_o the_o scripture_n signify_v also_o eleemosynam_fw-la as_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n translate_v it_o deut._n 6._o &_o 24._o and_o it_o be_v most_o plain_a in_o s._n matthew_n where_o our_o saviour_n say_v
the_o greek_a word_n be_v then_o do_v it_o signify_v deacon_n only_o which_o if_o they_o know_v not_o or_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o let_v they_o see_v beza_n himself_o in_o his_o annotation_n upon_o s._n matthew_n 25._o annot._fw-la e._n 5._o v._n 25._o who_o protest_v that_o in_o his_o translation_n he_o use_v always_o the_o word_n minister_n in_o the_o general_a signification_n and_o diaconus_fw-la in_o the_o special_a and_o peculiar_a ecclesiastical_a function_n of_o deacon_n so_o that_o yet_o we_o can_v not_o understand_v neither_o can_v they_o tell_v we_o whence_o their_o peculiar_a call_n &_o function_n of_o minister_n come_v which_o be_v their_o second_o degree_n under_o a_o bishop_n &_o be_v place_v in_o steed_n of_o priest_n 3_o again_o what_o can_v be_v more_o against_o the_o dignity_n of_o sacred_a order_n and_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n then_o to_o make_v they_o profane_a &_o secular_a by_o their_o term_n and_o translation_n for_o this_o purpose_n as_o they_o translate_v elder_n &_o eldership_n for_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n so_o do_v they_o most_o impudent_o term_v s._n peter_n and_o s._n john_n 〈◊〉_d john_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 4._o bib._n 1562._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o messenger_n &_o legate_n the_o scripture_n use_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lay_v man_n they_o say_v for_o apostle_n ambassador_n &_o messenger_n io._n 13._o v._n 16._o and_o for_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n messenger_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o cor._n 8._o for_o bishop_n overseer_n act._n 20._o why_o my_o master_n do_v idiota_fw-la signify_v a_o lay_a man_n suppose_v a_o lay_a man_n be_v as_o wise_a and_o learned_a as_o any_o other_o be_v he_o idiota_fw-la or_o that_o one_o of_o your_o minister_n be_v as_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a as_o any_o shepherd_n be_v he_o not_o idiota_fw-la so_o than_o idiota_fw-la be_v neither_o clerk_n nor_o lay_v man_n but_o every_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a man_n they_o that_o speak_v with_o miraculous_a tongue_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v they_o not_o lay_v man_n many_o of_o they_o 14.25.24_o 1_o cor._n 14.25.24_o yet_o the_o apostle_n plain_o distinguish_v they_o from_o idiota_fw-la so_o that_o this_o be_v more_o ignorant_o or_o wilful_o translate_v than_o neophytus_n a_o young_a scholar_n 3._o 1_o tim._n 3._o in_o all_o your_o bibles_n 4_o now_o for_o change_v the_o name_n apostle_n into_o messenger_n though_o beza_n do_v so_o also_o in_o the_o foresay_a place_n yet_o in_o deed_n he_o control_v both_o himself_o and_o you_o in_o other_o place_n say_v of_o the_o same_o word_n apostle_n 2._o annot_n in_o c._n 10._o mat._n v._o 2._o a_o man_n may_v say_v in_o latin_a legate_n but_o we_o have_v glad_o keep_v the_o greek_a word_n apostle_n as_o many_o other_o word_n familiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 23._o annot._n in_o ro._n 16._o v._n 7._o &_o in_o 2_o cor._n 8._o v._n 23._o and_o not_o only_o of_o the_o principal_a apostle_n but_o also_o of_o the_o other_o disciple_n he_o both_o translate_v and_o interprete_v in_o his_o comentarie_n that_o they_o be_v notable_a apostle_n and_o he_o prove_v that_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n as_o he_o term_v they_o be_v and_o may_v be_v so_o call_v and_o for_o your_o overseer_n he_o say_v episcopos_fw-la and_o not_o superintendentes_fw-la which_o he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v as_o you_o overseer_n but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n though_o he_o be_v to_o to_o profane_v yet_o he_o do_v much_o more_o keep_v &_o use_v the_o ecclesiastical_a receive_a term_n than_o you_o do_v often_o protest_v it_o and_o as_o it_o be_v glory_v therein_o 25._o in_o tit_n euang_n math._n &_o in_o c._n 3._o v._n 11._o etc._n etc._n 10._o v._n 2._o etc._n etc._n 5._o v._n 25._o against_o castaleon_n especial_o as_o when_o he_o say_v presbyterum_fw-la where_o you_o say_v elder_a diaconun_n where_o you_o say_v minister_n &_o so_o forth_o where_o if_o you_o tell_v i_o that_o howsoever_o he_o translate_v he_o mean_v as_o profane_o as_o you_o i_o believe_v you_o and_o therefore_o you_o shall_v go_v together_o like_a master_n like_o scholar_n all_o false_a and_o profane_a translatour_n for_o this_o beza_n who_o sometime_o so_o glad_o keep_v the_o name_n of_o apostle_n yet_o call_v epaphroditus_n legatum_fw-la philippensium_fw-la philip._n 2._o v._n 15._o whereupon_o the_o english_a bezites_n translate_v your_o messenger_n for_o your_o apostle_n as_o if_o s._n augustine_n who_o be_v our_o apostle_n shall_v be_v call_v our_o messenger_n 5_o as_o also_o when_o you_o translate_v of_o s._n mathias_n the_o apostle_n 1580._o no._n test_n 1580._o that_o he_o be_v by_o a_o common_a consent_n count_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n act._n 1._o v._n 26._o what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o make_v only_o a_o popular_a election_n of_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n 23._o annot._fw-la ibid._n &_o act._n 14._o v._n 23._o as_o beza_n in_o his_o annotation_n will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v say_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v here_o peculiar_o by_o peter_n as_o one_o of_o more_o excellent_a dignity_n than_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o common_a by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n though_o in_o a_o other_o place_n upon_o this_o election_n he_o note_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a or_o corypheus_n and_o as_o for_o the_o greek_a word_n in_o this_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o partiality_n of_o the_o cause_n will_v suffer_v he_o to_o consider_v of_o it_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o proper_a signification_n thereof_o in_o this_o phrase_n of_o speech_n be_v as_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a interpreter_n erasmus_n and_o valla_n all_o which_o he_o reject_v translate_v it_o to_o wit_n he_o be_v number_v or_o est_fw-la annumeratus_fw-la est_fw-la cooptatus_fw-la est_fw-la count_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n without_o all_o respect_n of_o common_a consent_n or_o not_o consent_v as_o you_o also_o in_o your_o other_o bible_n do_v translate_v 6_o which_o diversity_n may_v proceed_v of_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o you_o for_o we_o understand_v by_o master_n whitegifte_n book_n against_o the_o puritan_n 157._o his_o defence_n or_o 2_o book_n pag._n 157._o that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n deny_v this_o popular_a election_n &_o give_v preeminence_n superiority_n and_o difference_n in_o this_o case_n to_o peter_n and_o to_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n and_o therefore_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a the_o use_n and_o ecclesiastical_a signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o be_v the_o give_v of_o voice_n in_o popular_a election_n but_o to_o be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a impose_v of_o hand_n upon_o person_n take_v to_o the_o church_n ministry_n which_o he_o say_v very_o true_o and_o need_v the_o less_o here_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o special_o be_v touch_v 7_o touch_v chap._n 6._o nu_fw-la 7_o else_o where_o in_o this_o book_n 7_o one_o thing_n only_o we_o will_v know_v why_o they_o that_o plead_v so_o earnest_o against_o their_o brethren_n the_o puritan_n about_o the_o signification_n of_o this_o word_n pretend_v herein_o only_o the_o primitive_a custom_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o make_v their_o minister_n why_o i_o say_v themselves_o translate_v not_o this_o word_n according_o 1577._o bib._n 1577._o but_o altogether_o as_o the_o puritan_n thus_o when_o they_o have_v ordain_v they_o elder_n by_o election_n in_o every_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act._n 14._o v._n 23._o for_o if_o the_o greek_a word_n signify_v here_o the_o people_n give_v of_o voice_n as_o beza_n force_v it_o only_o that_o way_n out_o of_o tully_n &_o the_o popular_a custom_n of_o old_a athens_n than_o the_o other_o signification_n of_o impose_v hand_n be_v go_v which_o master_n whitgift_n defend_v and_o the_o popular_a election_n be_v bring_v in_o which_o he_o refall_v and_o so_o by_o their_o translation_n they_o have_v in_o my_o opinion_n overshoot_v themselves_o and_o give_v advantage_n to_o their_o brotherly_a adversary_n unless_o in_o deed_n they_o translate_v as_o they_o think_v because_o in_o deed_n they_o think_v as_o heretical_o as_o the_o other_o but_o yet_o because_o their_o state_n of_o ecclesiastical_a regiment_n be_v otherwise_o they_o must_v maintain_v that_o also_o in_o their_o write_n how_o so_o ever_o they_o translate_v for_o a_o example_n they_o all_o agree_v to_o translate_v elder_a for_o priest_n and_o m._n whitaker_n tell_v we_o a_o fresh_a in_o the_o name_n of_o they_o all_o camp_n pag._n 200._o ad_fw-la rat_n camp_n that_o there_o be_v no_o priest_n now_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v as_o he_o interprete_v himself_o this_o name_n priest_n be_v never_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n peculiar_o apply_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n 210._o pag._n 210._o this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v their_o practice_n in_o the_o
sacrament_n they_o be_v excuse_v because_o they_o translate_v not_o the_o latin_a but_o translate_n the_o greek_a why_o fay_v they_o not_o mystery_n which_o be_v the_o greek_a word_n here_o in_o the_o apostle_n i_o mean_v why_o say_v they_o not_o of_o matrimony_n this_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n no_o doubt_n there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o avoid_v both_o those_o word_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n to_o signify_v the_o sacrament_n for_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n itself_o be_v call_v but_o a_o mystery_n or_o mystery_n which_o yet_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o call_v a_o true_a sacrament_n therefore_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v call_v matrimony_n also_o by_o that_o name_n it_o may_v easy_o have_v sound_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n also_o more_o be_v it_o honest_a or_o lawful_a to_o translate_v baptis●_n i_o wash_v or_o baptismus_fw-la wash_v or_o euamgelium_n good_a news_n yet_o the_o word_n profane_o take_v signify_v no_o more_o but_o in_o say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a secret_a they_o put_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o take_v 4_o they_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v not_o every_o sacrament_n and_o mystery_n in_o english_a a_o secret_a yes_o as_o angel_n be_v a_o messenger_n and_o apostle_n one_o that_o be_v send_v but_o when_o the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v these_o word_n to_o signify_v more_o excellent_a and_o divine_a thing_n then_o those_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n do_v it_o become_v translator_n to_o use_v base_a term_n in_o steed_n thereof_o and_o so_o to_o disgrace_v the_o writing_n &_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o appeal_v to_o themselves_o when_o they_o translate_v this_o word_n in_o other_o place_n whether_o they_o say_v not_o thus_o and_o without_o doubt_n great_a be_v that_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n ●_o 1_o tim._n ●_o god_n be_v show_v manifest_o in_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n again_o the_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v 51._o col._n 1._o v._n 26._o eph._n 3._o v._n 9_o 1_o cor._n 15._o v._n 51._o but_o now_o be_v open_v to_o his_o saint_n again_o i_o show_v you_o a_o mystery_n we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v and_o the_o like_a where_o if_o they_o shall_v translate_v secret_a in_o steed_n of_o mystery_n as_o the_o bezites_n do_v in_o one_o of_o these_o place_n say_v i_o will_v show_v you_o a_o secret_a thing_n what_o a_o disgrace_n and_o debase_v be_v it_o to_o those_o high_a mystery_n there_o signify_v and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o these_o be_v it_o not_o so_o in_o matrimony_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v such_o a_o mystery_n that_o it_o represent_v no_o less_o matter_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v most_o excellent_a in_o that_o conjunction_n now_o then_o if_o in_o all_o other_o place_n of_o high_a mystery_n they_o translate_v it_o also_o mystery_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o only_o in_o matrimony_n do_v not_o so_o but_o say_v rather_o this_o be_v a_o great_a secret_a use_v so_o base_a a_o term_n in_o so_o high_a &_o excellent_a a_o mystery_n must_v we_o not_o needs_o think_v as_o no_o doubt_n it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v it_o because_o of_o their_o heretical_a opinion_n against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n and_o for_o their_o base_a estimation_n thereof_o 5_o but_o they_o will_v yet_o reply_v again_o &_o ask_v we_o what_o we_o gain_v by_o translate_n it_o either_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n do_v that_o make_v it_o one_o of_o the_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o call_v to_o wit_n such_o a_o sacrament_n as_o baptism_n be_v no_o sure_o but_o howsoever_o we_o gain_v otherwise_o at_o least_o we_o gain_v the_o commendation_n of_o true_a translator_n whether_o it_o make_v with_o we_o or_o against_o us._n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n that_o make_v it_o such_o a_o peculiar_a sacrament_n for_o as_o be_v say_v before_o sacrament_n be_v a_o general_a name_n in_o scripture_n to_o other_o thing_n neither_o do_v we_o therefore_o so_o translate_v it_o as_o though_o it_o be_v forthwith_o one_o of_o the_o 7_o sacrament_n because_o of_o the_o name_n but_o as_o in_o other_o place_n wheresoever_o we_o find_v this_o word_n in_o the_o latin_a we_o translate_v it_o sacrament_n as_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n 17._o apoc._n 17._o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o woman_n so_o find_v it_o here_o we_o do_v here_o also_o so_o translate_v it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o diverse_a take_n of_o it_o here_o and_o else_o where_o that_o we_o examine_v other_o wise_a by_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n and_o by_o the_o church_n and_o doctor_n interpretation_n and_o we_o find_v that_o here_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o sacrament_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o we_o say_v seven_o sacrament_n not_o so_o in_o the_o other_o place_n 6_o as_o when_o we_o read_v this_o name_n jesus_n in_o scripture_n common_a to_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o other_o man_n we_o transtate_v it_o always_o alike_o jesus_n but_o when_o it_o be_v 5._o be_v jude._n v._n 5._o jesus_n christ_n and_o when_o some_o other_o jesus_n 11._o jesus_n act._n 7._o v._n 45._o colos_n 4._o v._n 11._o we_o know_v by_o other_o circumstance_n likewise_o presuppose_v baptism_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n yet_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o will_v not_o nor_o can_v thereby_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o their_o two_o sacrament_n yet_o i_o trow_o they_o will_v not_o avoid_v to_o translate_v it_o by_o the_o word_n sacrament_n if_o they_o foud_z it_o so_o call_v even_o so_o we_o find_v matrimony_n so_o call_v do_v so_o translate_v it_o neither_o conclude_v thereby_o that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o nor_o yet_o suppress_v the_o name_n which_o no_o doubt_n give_v some_o occasion_n to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a doctor_n to_o esteem_v it_o as_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o they_o contrariwise_o as_o though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o call_v suppress_v the_o name_n altogether_o call_v it_o a_o secret_a to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o question_n that_o it_o be_v no_o sacrament_n which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o the_o scripture_n have_v say_v of_o baptism_n or_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n so_o partial_a they_o be_v to_o their_o own_o opinion_n chap._n xvii_o heretical_a translation_n against_o the_o b._n s_o acrament_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n 1_o now_o let_v we_o see_v concern_v the_o eucharist_n which_o they_o allow_v for_o a_o sacrament_n how_o they_o handle_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o disgrace_n and_o deface_v of_o the_o same_o also_o they_o take_v away_o the_o operation_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n blessing_n pronounce_v upon_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n make_v it_o only_o a_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n they_o translate_v more_o glad_o thanksgiving_n then_o blessing_n as_o matth._n 26._o the_o greek_a word_n be_v two_o 1577._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bib._n 1562._o 1577._o the_o one_o signify_v proper_o to_o bless_v the_o other_o to_o give_v thanks_n they_o translate_v both_o thus_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_n likewise_o marc._n 14._o in_o the_o bible_n print_v 1562._o and_o when_o they_o translate_v it_o blessing_n they_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o give_v thanks_n thanks_n great_a difference_n in_o the_o scripture_n between_o blessing_n and_o geve_v of_o thanks_n as_o beza_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o annotation_n mat._n 26._o v._n 26._o we_o reply_v and_o by_o most_o manifest_a scripture_n prove_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o former_a greek_a word_n do_v not_o signify_v thanksgiving_n proper_o but_o blessing_n and_o a_o blessing_n of_o creature_n to_o the_o operation_n of_o some_o great_a effect_n in_o they_o as_o when_o christ_n take_v the_o five_o loaf_n &_o two_o fish_n to_o multiply_v they_o 16._o benedixit_fw-la cis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d anno._n in_o 9_o luc._n v._n 16._o he_o bless_v they_o luc._n 9_o what_o say_v they_o to_o this_o think_v you_o do_v not_o the_o greek_a word_n here_o plain_o signify_v blessing_n of_o creature_n no_o say_v beza_n no_o doubt_n but_o here_o also_o it_o signify_v give_v thanks_n how_o beza_n he_o add_v not_o as_o though_o christ_n have_v give_v thanks_n to_o the_o bread_n for_o that_o be_v to_o absurd_a but_o we_o must_v mollify_v this_o interpretation_n thus_o that_o he_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n the_o father_n for_o the_o loaf_n and_o the_o fish_n be_v not_o this_o a_o notable_a exposition_n of_o these_o word_n benedixit_fw-la cis_fw-la 2_o we_o ask_v he_o in_o the_o like_a case_n when_o god_n bless_a adam_n and_o eve_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d psal_n 106._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o call_v because_o this_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v bless_v and_o consecrate_v with_o prayer_n &_o thanksgiving_n as_o s._n justine_n speak_v and_o because_o in_o this_o sacrifice_n so_o bless_v and_o consecrate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o we_o offer_v up_o a_o most_o acceptable_a oblation_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o a_o memory_n of_o all_o god_n marvellous_a benefit_n towards_o us._n in_o this_o sense_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n include_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o wit_n sacrament_n sacrifice_n blessing_n &_o consecration_n without_o which_o this_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v call_v eucharist_n than_o any_o other_o common_a give_v of_o thake_n as_o s._n irenaeus_n do_v plain_o signify_v when_o he_o declare_v hat_n be_v before_o bread_n 34._o li._n 4._o c._n 34._o and_o receive_v the_o invocation_n of_o god_n over_o it_o now_o be_v no_o more_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o earthly_a and_o the_o heavenly_a so_o that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n by_o circumstance_n of_o solemn_a word_n and_o ceremony_n &_o therefore_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a give_v of_o thanks_n and_o further_o we_o learn_v that_o s._n justines_n and_o s._n irenaeus_n word_n before_o allege_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d panis_n &_o calix_fw-la eucharistisatus_fw-la signify_v the_o bread_n and_o chalice_n make_v the_o eucharist_n and_o consequent_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o active_a thereof_o be_v by_o thanksgiving_n to_o make_v the_o eucharist_n and_o because_o the_o other_o word_n of_o blessing_n &_o this_o of_o thanksgiving_n be_v use_v indifferent_o one_o for_o a_o other_o in_o christ_n action_n about_o this_o sacrament_n we_o learn_v undoubted_o that_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o meaning_n be_v blessing_n &_o give_v thanks_n he_o make_v the_o eucharist_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o singular_a thanksgiving_n which_o as_o s._n augustine_n often_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v the_o faithful_a only_o do_v know_v &_o understand_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o the_o faithful_a only_o understand_v therefore_o the_o protestant_n and_o caluiniste_n be_v so_o ignorant_a in_o this_o mystery_n that_o to_o take_v away_o all_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o they_o bend_v both_o their_o exposition_n and_o translation_n 7_o after_z they_o have_v turn_v blessing_n or_o consecration_n into_o bare_a thanksgiving_n which_o be_v one_o step_n towards_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n they_o come_v near_o and_o so_o include_v christ_n in_o heaven_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v withal_o upon_o the_o altar_n translate_n thus_o who_o heaven_n must_v contain_v until_o the_o time_n that_o allthing_n be_v restore_v act._n 3._o v._n 21._o and_o yet_o beza_n worse_a 43._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la rat_n camp_n pag._n 43._o and_o he_o that_o allege_v he_o m._n whitaker_n who_o must_v be_v contain_v in_o heaven_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o greek_a that_o not_o only_a illyricus_n the_o luthera_n but_o caluin_n himself_o do_v not_o like_o it_o beza_n protest_v that_o he_o so_o translate_v of_o purpose_n to_o keep_v christ_n presence_n from_o the_o altar_n and_o we_o marvel_v the_o less_o because_o we_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o many_o the_o like_o his_o impudent_a protestation_n m._n whitak_n only_o we_o do_v marvel_v at_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v either_o so_o deceive_v by_o a_o other_o man_n translation_n or_o himself_o be_v so_o oversee_v in_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o know_v not_o a_o mere_a deponent_a and_o only_a deponent_a from_o a_o passive_a 8_o this_o do_v not_o become_v he_o that_o *_o 84._o ibid._n pa._n 84._o object_v ignorance_n of_o the_o greek_a to_o a_o other_o man_n and_o that_o after_o he_o have_v well_o try_v by_o public_a conference_n he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o try_v he_o he_o presume_v to_o belie_v he_o before_o he_o know_v he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a &_o so_o object_v it_o as_o though_o he_o know_v not_o three_o word_n in_o that_o tongue_n whereas_o he_o have_v hear_v he_o read_v &_o interpret_v s._n basil_n not_o the_o easy_a of_o the_o greek_a doctor_n this_o be_v palpable_a impudency_n and_o a_o face_n that_o can_v not_o blush_v and_o full_a of_o malice_n against_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n who_o if_o they_o know_v not_o a_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v never_o the_o worse_o nor_o the_o less_o learned_a but_o among_o fool_n and_o child_n that_o esteem_v learning_n by_o such_o trifle_n which_o grammarian_n know_v far_o better_o than_o great_a divine_n for_o be_v not_o he_o a_o wise_a man_n that_o will_v prefer_v one_o master_n humphrey_n master_n fulke_n master_n whitaker_n or_o some_o of_o we_o poor_a man_n because_o we_o have_v a_o little_a smack_n in_o the_o three_o tongue_n before_o s._n chrysostom_n s._n basil_n s._n augustin_n s._n gregory_n or_o s._n thomas_n that_o understand_v well_o none_o but_o one_o howbeit_o if_o they_o esteem_v learning_n by_o knowledge_n of_o the_o tongue_n they_o will_v not_o i_o trow_n compare_v with_o catholic_n either_o of_o former_a time_n or_o of_o these_o late_a age_n special_o since_o their_o new_a gospel_n begin_v &_o if_o they_o will_v compare_v with_o we_o herein_o for_o their_o simple_a credit_n we_o may_v perhaps_o give_v they_o occasion_n ere_o it_o be_v long_o to_o muster_v their_o man_n all_o at_o once_o if_o they_o dare_v show_v their_o face_n before_o our_o camp_n of_o excellent_a hebrician_n grecian_n latiniste_n of_o absolute_a linguiste_n in_o the_o chaldoe_n syriake_n arabike_a &c._n &c._n who_o they_o must_v needs_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v and_o to_o be_v even_o at_o this_o day_n their_o master_n and_o teacher_n 9_o but_o to_o return_v to_o you_o m._n whitaker_n great_a be_v your_o fault_n in_o divinity_n then_o in_o the_o tongue_n when_o you_o make_v your_o argument_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n out_o of_o this_o place_n as_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n &_o s._n peter_n whereas_o they_o be_v beza_n word_n and_o not_o s._n peter_n again_o whether_o you_o take_v beza_n word_n or_o s._n peter_n your_o argument_n fail_v very_o much_o when_o you_o conclude_v that_o christ_n natural_a body_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v place_v and_o contain_v in_o heaven_n for_o s._n chrysostom_n tell_v you_o antioch_n ho._n 2_o ad_fw-la po_fw-la antioch_n that_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n both_o leave_v we_o his_o flesh_n and_o yet_o ascend_v have_v the_o same_o and_o again_o o_o miracle_n say_v he_o sacerdotio_fw-la li._n 3_o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la he_o that_o sit_v above_o with_o the_o father_n in_o the_o same_o moment_n of_o time_n be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o al._n this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n m._n whitaker_n and_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o this_o be_v i_o trow_n a_o other_o manner_n of_o faith_n and_o far_o great_a thus_o to_o believe_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o both_o place_n at_o once_o because_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o have_v say_v the_o word_n then_o your_o faith_n whereof_o you_o boast_v so_o much_o which_o believe_v no_o further_a than_o that_o he_o be_v ascend_v and_o that_o therefore_o he_o can_v be_v present_a upon_o the_o altar_n nor_o dispose_v of_o his_o body_n as_o he_o listen_v 10_o again_o it_o be_v a_o very_a famous_a place_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o blood_n which_o we_o have_v handle_v at_o large_a 38._o large_a chap._n 1._o numb_a 38._o else_o where_o but_o here_o also_o must_v be_v brief_o touch_v when_o our_o saviour_n say_v luc._n 22._o this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o for_o so_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v refer_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a in_o which_o speech_n chalice_n must_v needs_o be_v take_v for_o that_o in_o the_o chalice_n and_o that_o in_o the_o chalice_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n &_o not_o wine_n because_o his_o blood_n only_o be_v shed_v for_o us._n &_o so_o we_o do_v plain_o prove_v the_o real_a presence_n according_a as_o s._n chrysostom_n also_o say_v 24._o in_o 1_o cor._n ca._n 10._o ho._n 24._o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la in_o calice_n illud_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la fluxit_fw-la de_fw-la latere_fw-la that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n be_v the_o same_o that_o gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n all_o which_o most_o necessary_a deduction_n beza_n will_v defeat_v by_o say_v the_o greek_a be_v corrupt_v in_o all_o the_o copy_n that_o
also_o a_o great_a hebrician_n do_v not_o read_v as_o now_o we_o have_v in_o the_o hebrew_n mittamus_fw-la destruamus_fw-la ponamus_fw-la mittamus_fw-la nashchîtha_n but_o nashitha_n or_o nashlîcha_n again_o the_o hebrew_n word_n that_o now_o be_v do_v so_o little_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n follow_a that_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o translate_v it_o as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o diversity_n and_o difference_n of_o their_o translation_n thereof_o before_o mention_v and_o transpose_v the_o word_n in_o english_a otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o hebrew_n neither_o of_o both_o their_o translation_n have_v any_o commodious_a sense_n or_o understanding_n 20_o but_o yet_o they_o will_v pretend_v that_o for_o the_o first_o word_n at_o the_o least_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o they_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n that_o now_o be_v not_o consider_v that_o if_o this_o be_v a_o good_a excuse_n than_o may_v they_o as_o well_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n that_o now_o be_v psal_n 21._o v._n 18_o and_o so_o utter_o suppress_v and_o take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n this_o notable_a prophecy_n they_o pierce_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n which_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o neither_o can_v they_o do_v it_o for_o shame_n if_o they_o will_v be_v count_v christian_n so_o that_o in_o deed_n to_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n sometime_o where_o it_o be_v corrupt_v be_v no_o sufficient_a excuse_n for_o they_o though_o it_o may_v have_v a_o pretence_n of_o true_a translation_n and_o we_o promise_v in_o the_o preface_n in_o such_o case_n not_o to_o call_v it_o heretical_a translation_n 9_o that_o water_n and_o wine_n ought_v to_o be_v mingle_v in_o the_o chalice_n pro._n 9_o 21_o but_o concern_v the_o b._n sacrament_n let_v we_o see_v once_o more_o how_o true_o they_o follow_v the_o hebrew_n the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v s._n cyprian_n ep_v 63_o nu_fw-la 2._o by_o solomon_n foreshow_v a_o type_n of_o our_o lord_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o immolate_a host_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v wisdom_n have_v kill_v her_o host_n she_o have_v mingle_v her_o wine_n into_o the_o cup_n come_v you_o eat_v of_o my_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o wine_n that_o i_o have_v mingle_v for_o you_o speak_v of_o wine_n mingle_v say_v this_o holy_a doctor_n he_o foreshow_v prophetical_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o lord_n mingle_v with_o water_n and_o wine_n so_o do_v s._n hierom_n interpret_v this_o mixture_n or_o mingle_v of_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n so_o do_v the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o this_o place_n among_o s._n hieroms_n work_n 20._o see_v s._n augustine_n the_o civit_n dei_fw-la li._n 17_o c._n 20._o so_o do_v the_o other_o father_n so_o that_o there_o be_v great_a importance_n in_o these_o prophetical_a word_n of_o solomon_n she_o have_v mingle_v her_o wine_n into_o the_o cup_n and_o the_o wine_n which_o i_o have_v mingle_v as_o be_v a_o manifest_a prophecy_n of_o christ_n mingle_v water_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n observe_v at_o this_o day_n and_o whereof_o s._n cyprian_n write_v the_o foresay_a long_a epistle_n 22_o but_o the_o protestant_n count_v it_o a_o idle_a superstitious_a ceremony_n here_o also_o frame_v their_o translation_n according_o suppress_v altogether_o this_o mixture_n or_o mingle_v and_o in_o steed_n thereof_o say_v she_o have_v draw_v her_o wine_n 1579._o bibl._n 1579._o and_o drink_v the_o wine_n that_o i_o have_v draw_v or_o as_o in_o other_o of_o their_o bible_n she_o have_v pour_v out_o her_o wine_n 1577._o a_o 1577._o and_o the_o wine_n which_o i_o have_v pour_v out_o neither_o translation_n agre_v either_o with_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n miscui_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d miscuit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d miscui_fw-la not_o with_o the_o greek_a which_o do_v evident_o signify_v mingle_v and_o mixture_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a &_o as_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v use_v this_o word_n in_o this_o very_a case_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o mingle_v water_n &_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n s_o james_n and_o s._n basil_n in_o their_o liturgy_n express_o testify_v that_o christ_n do_v so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o also_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v s._n justine_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o second_o apology_n call_v it_o of_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v according_a to_o plutarche_n wine_n mingle_v with_o water_n calix_fw-la mixtus_fw-la calix_fw-la likewise_o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o five_o book_n near_o the_o beginning_n 32._o conc._n constantinop_n 6._o can_n 32._o see_v the_o 6_o general_a council_n most_o full_o treat_v hereof_o and_o deduce_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n &_o ancient_a father_n 18._o chap._n 18._o and_o interpret_n this_o greek_a word_n by_o a_o other_o equivalent_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o more_o plain_a to_o signify_v this_o mixture_n 23_o thus_o they_o the_o greek_a be_v neither_o draw_v of_o wine_n nor_o pour_v out_o thereof_o as_o they_o translate_v but_o mingle_v but_o the_o hebrew_n perhaps_o signify_v both_o or_o at_o the_o least_o one_o of_o the_o two_o either_o to_o draw_v or_o to_o power_n out_o gentle_a reader_n if_o thou_o have_v skill_n look_v the_o hebrew_n lexicon_n of_o pagnine_n esteem_v the_o best_a if_o thou_o have_v not_o skill_n ask_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o thou_o shall_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o signification_n of_o this_o word_n in_o all_o the_o bible_n but_o that_o it_o signify_v only_a mixture_n &_o mingle_v a_o strange_a case_n that_o to_o avoid_v this_o mingle_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o have_v invent_v two_o other_o signification_n of_o this_o hebrew_n word_n which_o it_o never_o have_v before_o chap._n xviii_o heretical_a translation_n against_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n namely_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n 1_o let_v we_o pass_v from_o god_n holy_a sacrament_n to_o his_o honourable_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o these_o translation_n pluck_v from_o they_o also_o as_o much_o honour_n as_o they_o may_v in_o the_o psalm_n 138_o where_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o all_o antiquity_n read_v thus_o 138._o psal_n 138._o nimis_fw-la honorati_fw-la sunt_fw-la amici_fw-la tui_fw-la deus_fw-la etc._n etc._n thy_o friend_n o_o god_n be_v become_v exceed_o honourable_a their_o princedom_n be_v exceed_o strengthen_v which_o verse_n be_v sing_v and_o say_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n agreable_o to_o that_o in_o a_o other_o psalm_n 44._o ps_n 44._o constitues_fw-la eos_fw-la principes_fw-la super_fw-la omnem_fw-la terram_fw-la thou_o shall_v appoint_v they_o prince_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n what_o mean_v they_o in_o all_o their_o english_a bibles_n to_o alter_v it_o thus_o how_o dear_a be_v thy_o counsel_n or_o thought_n to_o i_o o_o god_n o_o how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o do_v not_o the_o hebrew_n make_v more_o for_o the_o old_a receive_a latin_a translation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o for_o they_o because_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v use_v more_o common_o for_o to_o signify_v friend_n then_o cogitation_n do_v not_o s._n hierom_n so_o translate_v in_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o psalm_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n do_v not_o the_o great_a rabbine_n r._n solomon_n do_v not_o the_o greek_a put_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v altogether_o according_a to_o the_o say_v ancient_a latin_a translation_n 2_o and_o you_o my_o master_n that_o translate_v otherwise_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o beseech_v you_o be_v it_o in_o hebrew_n how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o &_o not_o rather_o word_n for_o word_n most_o plain_o how_o be_v the_o head_n of_o they_o strengthen_v or_o their_o princedom_n as_o in_o the_o greek_a also_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d why_o do_v you_o then_o hunt_v after_o novelty_n and_o forsake_v the_o tread_a path_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o pass_v the_o bound_n which_o our_o holy_a forefather_n have_v set_v and_o appoint_v prefer_v your_o own_o singularity_n and_o new_a devise_n even_o there_o where_o you_o can_v not_o just_o pretend_v either_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_n radice_fw-la epito_n thesau_n pagn_n a_o 1570._o in_o radice_fw-la when_o the_o hebrew_n lexicon_n have_v give_v the_o common_a interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n and_o then_o say_v quidam_fw-la exponunt_fw-la some_o expound_v it_o otherwise_o why_o have_v you_o rather_o be_v of_o that_o lesser_a some_o that_o expound_v otherwise_o then_o of_o the_o great_a society_n of_o all_o ancient_a interpreter_n 3_o but_o this_o new_a fangle_a singulatitie_n of_o teach_v and_o translate_n
adore_v towards_o the_o top_n of_o his_o sceptre_n as_o other_o read_v and_o interpret_v and_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v no_o other_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n in_o all_o antiquity_n but_o in_o s._n augustine_n only_o as_o beza_n confess_v 1579._o quaest_n in_o gen._n bib._n 1579._o yet_o be_v they_o so_o bold_a to_o make_v his_o exposition_n only_o and_o his_o commentary_n peculiar_a to_o he_o alone_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o translation_n say_v jacob_n lean_v on_o the_o end_n of_o his_o staff_n worship_v god_n and_o so_o exclude_v all_o other_o sense_n &_o exposition_n of_o all_o the_o other_o father_n exclude_v and_o condemn_v their_o own_o former_a translation_n 1577._o bib._n 1562._o 1577._o add_v two_o word_n more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n lean_v god_n force_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o signify_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o may_v be_v but_o be_v as_o rare_a as_o virgae_fw-la eius_fw-la for_o virgae_fw-la suae_fw-la turn_v the_o other_o word_n clean_o out_o of_o their_o order_n and_o place_n and_o form_n of_o construction_n which_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v correspondent_a and_o answerable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v translate_v 〈◊〉_d gen._n 47._o v._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o hebrew_n word_n themselves_o translate_v in_o this_o order_n he_o worship_v towards_o the_o bed_n head_n if_o he_o worship_v towards_o the_o bed_n head_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n then_o do_v he_o worship_v towards_o the_o top_n of_o his_o sceptre_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a the_o difference_n of_o both_o be_v only_o in_o these_o word_n sceptre_n and_z bed_n because_o the_o hebrew_n be_v ambiguous_a to_o both_o and_o not_o in_o the_o order_n or_o construction_n of_o the_o sentence_n 2_o to_o make_v it_o more_o plain_a when_o the_o prophet_n david_n say_v adorabo_fw-la ad_fw-la templum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la tuum_fw-la psal_n 5._o &_o 137._o be_v not_o the_o true_a translation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o grammatical_a sequel_n of_o the_o word_n thus_o i_o will_v adore_v towards_o thy_o holy_a temple_n be_v it_o not_o a_o common_a phrase_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n adore_v towards_o jerusalem_n 131._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dan._n 6._o 3_o reg._n 8._o psal_n 98._o jos_n 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ps_n 131._o towards_o his_o holy_a mount_n before_o the_o ark_n towards_o the_o place_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v may_v any_o man_n be_v so_o bold_a by_o add_v and_o transpose_v to_o alter_v and_o obscure_v all_o such_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o there_o may_v appear_v no_o manner_n of_o adoration_n towards_o or_o before_o a_o creature_n and_o for_o worship_v or_o adore_v towards_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a and_o the_o like_a may_v we_o say_v lean_v upon_o those_o thing_n to_o worship_n or_o adore_v god_n be_v they_o afraid_a lest_o those_o speech_n of_o holy_a scripture_n may_v warrant_v and_o confirm_v the_o catholic_a &_o christian_a manner_n of_o adore_v our_o saviour_n christ_n towards_o the_o holy_a rood_n at_o or_o before_o his_o image_n and_o the_o crucifix_n before_o the_o altar_n and_o so_o forth_o for_o have_v they_o not_o feat_v this_o why_o shall_v they_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cane_v upon_o rather_o than_o towards_o yea_o why_o in_o genesis_n towards_o his_o bed_n head_n &_o here_o not_o towards_o 3_o and_z which_o be_v more_o when_o the_o ancient_a greek_a father_n chrys_n oecum_fw-la in_o collectan_n damesc_n li._n 1._o pro_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la leont_n apud_fw-la damasc_n put_v so_o little_a force_n either_o in_o this_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o other_o allege_v that_o they_o expound_v all_o those_o speech_n as_o if_o the_o preposition_n be_v of_o phrase_n only_o and_o not_o of_o signification_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v jacob_n adore_v joseph_n sceptre_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o people_n of_o israel_n adore_v the_o temple_n the_o ark_n the_o holy_a mount_n the_o place_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v and_o the_o like_a whereby_o s._n damascene_fw-la prove_v the_o adoration_n of_o creature_n name_v dulia_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d namely_o of_o the_o cross_n and_o of_o sacred_a image_n if_o i_o say_v they_o make_v so_o little_a force_n of_o the_o preposition_n that_o they_o infer_v not_o only_a adoration_n towards_o the_o thing_n but_o adoration_n of_o the_o thing_n how_o do_v these_o goodly_a translatour_n of_o all_o other_o word_n so_o strain_v and_o rack_n the_o little_a particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o signify_v lean_v upon_o that_o it_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_a signify_v any_o thing_n tend_v towards_o adoration_n 4_o and_o if_o the_o greek_a doctor_n suffice_v not_o to_o satisfy_v these_o great_a grecian_n herein_o telme_v you_o that_o have_v skill_n in_o the_o hebrew_n whether_o in_o the_o foresay_a speech_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o the_o hebrew_n preposition_n 98.131_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d psal_n 98.131_o sure_o no_o more_o than_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v in_o english_a without_o preposition_n adore_v you_o his_o holy_a hill_n we_o will_v adore_v the_o place_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v 96._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d psal_n 95._o or_o 96._o adore_v you_o his_o footstool_n for_o you_o know_v that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o preposition_n also_o when_o it_o be_v say_v adore_v you_o our_o lord_n or_o as_o yourselves_o translate_v worship_v the_o lord_n where_o there_o can_v be_v no_o force_n nor_o signification_n of_o the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o in_o these_o place_n also_o your_o translation_n be_v corrupt_a and_o wilful_a when_o you_o say_v thus_o we_o will_v fall_v down_o before_o his_o footstool_n fall_v you_o down_o before_o his_o footstool_n before_o his_o holy_a mount_n or_o wouship_v he_o upon_o his_o holy_a hill_n where_o you_o shun_v and_o avoid_v first_o the_o term_n of_o adoration_n which_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n due_o express_v by_o term_n correspondent_a in_o both_o language_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d through_o out_o the_o bible_n and_o be_v apply_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o signify_v adore_v of_o creature_n second_o you_o avoid_v the_o greek_a phrase_n which_o be_v at_o the_o least_o to_o adore_v towards_o these_o holy_a thing_n and_o place_n &_o much_o more_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n which_o be_v to_o adore_v the_o very_a thing_n rehearse_v to_o adore_v god_n footstool_n as_o the_o psalm_n say_v because_o it_o be_v holy_a 98._o psal_n 98._o or_o because_o he_o be_v holy_a who_o footstool_n it_o be_v as_o the_o greek_a read_v 5_o this_o being_n most_o manifest_a to_o all_o that_o have_v skill_n in_o these_o tongue_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o you_o regard_v neither_o hebrew_n nor_o greek_a but_o only_o your_o heresy_n &_o that_o in_o s._n paul_n place_n aforesaid_a of_o adore_v joseph_n sceptre_n you_o alter_v it_o by_o your_o own_o fancy_n and_o not_o by_o s._n augustine_n authority_n who_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o will_v not_o admit_v read_v in_o the_o psalm_n adore_v you_o his_o footstool_n and_o so_o precise_o and_o religious_o read_v thus_o that_o he_o examine_v the_o case_n and_o find_v thereby_o that_o the_o b._n sacrament_n must_v be_v adore_v and_o that_o no_o good_a christian_n do_v take_v it_o before_o he_o adore_v it_o neither_o will_v you_o admit_v he_o when_o he_o read_v thus_o of_o david_n 33._o praef._n in_o ps_n 33._o he_o be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n &_o interprete_v it_o mystical_o of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n when_o he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o his_o disciple_n yet_o be_v s._n augustine_n interpretation_n howsoever_o you_o like_v or_o mislike_v they_o very_o good_a as_o also_o that_o above_o name_v of_o jacobs_n lean_v upon_o his_o staff_n and_o adore_v may_v be_v one_o good_a sense_n or_o commentary_n of_o that_o place_n but_o yet_o a_o commentary_n and_o one_o doctor_n opinion_n not_o the_o sacred_a text_n of_o scripture_n as_o you_o will_v make_v it_o by_o so_o translate_n 6_o and_o if_o s._n hierom_n like_v not_o the_o greek_a doctor_n interpretation_n in_o this_o place_n of_o adore_v joseph_n and_o his_o sceptre_n yet_o he_o also_o say_v that_o jacob_n adore_v towards_o joseph_n rod_n or_o towards_o the_o bed_n head_n and_o not_o lean_v upon_o his_o staff_n he_o adore_v which_o you_o make_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o though_o he_o think_v that_o in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o mean_v any_o adoration_n of_o joseph_n yet_o i_o be_o sure_a for_o adoration_n of_o holy_a thing_n namely_o relic_n the_o holy_a land_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a place_n
marvel_v unto_o we_o that_o know_v not_o the_o reason_n of_o your_o do_n why_o you_o have_v 〈◊〉_d have_v bib_n 1577._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d leave_v out_o alleluia_n nine_o time_n in_o the_o six_o last_o psalm_n alleluia_n alleluia_n be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n nine_o time_n more_o than_o in_o your_o translation_n special_o when_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a and_o joyful_a song_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n see_v the_o new_a english_a testament_n annot._n apoc._n 19_o 14_o again_o you_o translate_v thus_o many_o which_o have_v see_v the_o first_o house_n when_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o house_n be_v lay_v before_o their_o eye_n weep_v etc._n etc._n look_v well_o to_o your_o hebrew_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o according_a both_o to_o the_o greek_a &_o the_o latin_a thus_o many_o which_o have_v see_v the_o first_o house_n in_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o that_o be_v yet_o stand_v upon_o the_o foundation_n not_o destroy_v and_o this_o temple_n before_o their_o eye_n weep_v you_o imagine_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v mean_v they_o see_v salomon_n temple_n when_o it_o be_v first_o found_v which_o because_o it_o be_v unpossible_a therefore_o you_o translate_v otherwise_o then_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n greek_n and_o latin_n but_o yet_o in_o some_o of_o your_o bibles_n you_o shall_v have_v consider_v the_o matter_n better_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o translate_v according_o 15_o and_o sure_o why_o you_o shall_v translate_v 4_o reg._n 23._o v._n 13._o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o mount_n olivete_fw-fr rather_o than_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o why_o you_o abject_a of_o the_o gentile_n esa_n 45._o v._n 20._o rather_o then_o you_o that_o be_v save_v of_o the_o gentile_n you_o belike_o know_v some_o reason_n we_o do_v not_o neither_o by_o the_o hebrew_n nor_o the_o greek_a 16_o howbeit_o in_o these_o lesser_a thing_n though_o nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v count_v little_a you_o may_v perhaps_o more_o free_o have_v take_v your_o pleasure_n in_o follow_a neither_o hebrew_n nor_o greek_a but_o when_o it_o concern_v a_o matter_n no_o less_o than_o usury_n there_o by_o your_o false_a translation_n to_o give_v occasion_n unto_o the_o reader_n to_o be_v a_o usurer_n be_v no_o small_a fault_n either_o against_o true_a religion_n or_o against_o good_a manner_n 19_o bib._n 1562._o 1577._o deut._n 23._o v._o 19_o this_o you_o do_v most_o evident_o in_o your_o most_o authentical_a translation_n say_v thus_o thou_o shall_v not_o hurt_v thy_o brother_n by_o usury_n of_o money_n nor_o by_o usury_n of_o corn_n nor_o by_o usury_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v be_v hurt_v withal_o what_o be_v this_o to_o say_v but_o that_o usury_n be_v not_o here_o forbid_v unless_o it_o hurt_v the_o party_n that_o borow_v which_o be_v so_o root_v in_o most_o man_n heart_n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n that_o they_o think_v such_o usury_n very_o lawful_a and_o daily_o offend_v mortal_o that_o way_n where_o almighty_a god_n in_o this_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o a_o word_n of_o hurt_v or_o not_o hurt_v as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o the_o geneva_n bible_n but_o say_v simple_o thus_o thou_o shall_v not_o lend_v to_o thy_o brother_n to_o usury_n usury_n of_o money_n usury_n of_o meat_n usury_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v put_v to_o usury_n 17_o mark_v the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o greek_a and_o see_v and_o be_v ashamed_a that_o you_o strain_n and_o pervert_v it_o to_o say_v for_o non_fw-la foenerabis_fw-la fratri_fw-la tuo_fw-la which_o be_v word_n for_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n thou_o shall_v not_o hurt_v thy_o brother_n by_o usury_n if_o the_o hebrew_n word_n in_o the_o use_n of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v signify_v to_o hurt_v by_o usury_n why_o do_v you_o in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n follow_v in_o the_o self_n same_o bible_n translate_v it_o thus_o 20._o ibid._n v._o 20._o unto_o astranger_fw-fr thou_o may_v lend_v upon_o usury_n but_o not_o unto_o thy_o brother_n why_o say_v you_o not_o a_o stranger_n thou_o may_v hurt_v with_o usury_n but_o not_o thy_o brother_n be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o word_n and_o phrase_n here_o and_o before_o and_o if_o you_o have_v so_o translate_v it_o here_o also_o the_o jew_n will_v have_v thank_v you_o who_o by_o force_v the_o hebrew_n word_n as_o you_o do_v think_v it_o very_o good_a to_o hurt_v any_o stranger_n that_o be_v any_o christian_n by_o any_o usury_n be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a 18_o what_o shall_v i_o tell_v you_o of_o other_o fault_n which_o i_o will_v glad_o account_v oversighte_n or_o ignorances_n such_o as_o we_o also_o desire_v pardon_n of_o but_o all_o be_v not_o such_o though_o some_o be_v as_o two_o thousand_o 1579._o cant._n cantic._n c._n 8._o v._n 12_o bib._n 1579._o write_v at_o length_n to_o they_o that_o keep_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o in_o the_o hebrew_n &_o greek_a two_o hundred_o again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 1._o v._n 4._o as_o the_o fruit_n of_o cedar_n in_o the_o hebr._n and_o greek_n tabernacle_n and_o 11._o isa_n 7._o v._n 11._o ask_v a_o sign_n either_o in_o the_o depth_n or_o in_o the_o height_n above_o for_o in_o the_o depth_n of_o hel._n and_o great_a work_n be_v wrought_v by_o he_o 2._o mat._n 14._o v._n 2._o for_o do_v work_n in_o he_o as_o s._n paul_n use_v the_o same_o word_n 2_o cor._n 4._o v._n 12._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v ready_a a_o horse_n act._n 23._o v._n 24._o in_o the_o greek_a beast_n and_o 1577._o bib._n 1577._o if_o a_o man_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n receive_v circumcision_n without_o break_v of_o the_o la_o of_o moses_n io._n 7._o v._n 23._o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o la_o of_o moses_n be_v not_o break_v and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n must_v suffer_v many_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v reprove_v of_o the_o elder_n mar._n 8._o v._n 31._o for_o be_v reject_v as_o in_o the_o psalm_n the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n reject_v we_o say_v not_o reprove_v of_o the_o say_a stone_n which_o be_v christ_n 3._o 1_o tim._n 3._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o young_a scholar_n in_o all_o your_o translation_n false_o and_o simo_n of_o chanaan_n or_o simon_n the_o cananite_n 3._o mar._n 3._o who_o be_v call_v otherwise_o zelótes_n that_o be_v zealous_a as_o a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n cananaeus_fw-la which_o i_o marvel_v you_o consider_v not_o special_o consider_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n for_o zealous_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o the_o other_o for_o a_o cananite_n begin_v with_o diverse_a letter_n and_o 1._o heb._n 2._o v._o 1._o lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o shall_v let_v they_o slip_v for_o lest_o we_o slip_v or_o run_v by_o and_o so_o be_v lose_v 19_o and_o as_o for_o the_o first_o bible_n 1562._o an._n 1562._o which_o be_v do_v in_o haste_n and_o not_o yet_o correct_v but_o be_v print_v still_o a_o fresh_a 22._o mat._n 22._o that_o say_v with_o herod_n servant_n as_o though_o that_o be_v the_o only_a sense_n that_o call_v idiotas_fw-la lay_a man_n 24._o man_n mat._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o ship_n 5._o ship_n mar._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wonder_v 25._o wonder_v mat._n 25._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v go_v out_o 3._o eph._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o substance_n and_o to_o know_v the_o excellent_a love_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n that_o excel_v knowledge_n and_o of_o man_n that_o turn_v away_o the_o truth_n 1._o tit._n 1._o for_o that_o shun_v the_o truth_n and_o turn_v away_o from_o it_o and_o mount_n sina_n be_v agar_n in_o arabia_n for_o agar_n be_v mount_n sina_n etc._n etc._n 20_o let_v these_o and_o the_o like_v be_v small_a negligence_n or_o ignorances_n such_o as_o you_o will_v pardon_v we_o also_o if_o you_o find_v the_o like_a neither_o do_v we_o great_o mislike_v that_o you_o leave_v these_o word_n 33._o word_n deut._n 33._o vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_n and_o 23._o and_o 4_o reg_n 23._o chemarim_n and_o c_o ziims_n &_o jim_n untranslate_v 50._o jerem._n 50._o because_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o express_v they_o in_o english_a and_o we_o will_v have_v like_v it_o as_o well_o in_o certain_a other_o word_n which_o you_o have_v translate_v image_n image_n and_o still_o image_n 15._o hamanim_fw-la esa_n 17._o gillulim_n jer._n 50._o miphletse_v 3_o ro._n 15._o be_v as_o hard_o to_o express_v the_o true_a signification_n of_o they_o as_o the_o former_a and_o we_o hope_v you_o will_v the_o rather_o bear_v with_o the_o late_a catholic_a translation_n of_o
though_o if_o joseph_n have_v be_v in_o a_o grave_n jacob_n will_v have_v go_v down_o to_o he_o into_o the_o same_o grave_n for_o so_o the_o word_n must_v needs_o import_v if_o they_o take_v grave_a proper_o but_o if_o they_o take_v grave_a unproper_o for_o the_o state_n of_o dead_a man_n after_o this_o life_n why_o do_v they_o call_v it_o grave_n infernus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d infernus_fw-la and_o not_o hell_n as_o the_o word_n be_v in_o hebrew_n greek_n and_o latin_a no_o doubt_v they_o do_v it_o to_o make_v the_o ignorant_a reader_n believe_v that_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n speak_v of_o his_o body_n only_o to_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_n to_o joseph_n body_n for_o as_o concern_v jacobs_n soul_n that_o be_v by_o their_o opinion_n to_o ascend_v immediate_o after_o his_o death_n to_o heaven_n and_o not_o to_o descend_v into_o the_o grave_n but_o if_o jacob_n be_v to_o ascend_v forthwith_n in_o soul_n how_o can_v he_o say_v as_o they_o translate_v i_o will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n unto_o my_o son_n as_o if_o according_a to_o their_o opinion_n he_o shall_v say_v my_o son_n body_n be_v devour_v of_o a_o beast_n and_o his_o soul_n be_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n well_o i_o will_v go_v down_o to_o he_o into_o the_o grave_n 8_o gentile_a reader_n that_o thou_o may_v the_o better_o conceive_v these_o absurdity_n and_o the_o more_o detest_v their_o guileful_a corruption_n understand_v as_o we_o begin_v to_o tell_v thou_o before_o that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o ascend_n into_o heaven_n the_o way_n of_o the_o holies_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n speak_v be_v not_o yet_o make_v open_a because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o *_o 8._o hebr._n 9_o v._o 8._o dedicate_v and_o begin_v the_o entrance_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o by_o his_o passion_n to_o open_a heaven_n 20._o hebr._n 10._o v._o 20._o therefore_o we_o say_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o common_a phrase_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v even_o of_o the_o best_a man_n as_o well_o as_o of_o other_o that_o die_v they_o go_v down_o ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la or_o ad_fw-la infernum_fw-la to_o signify_v that_o such_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n that_o every_o man_n go_v down_o and_o not_o up_o descend_v and_o not_o ascend_v by_o descend_v i_o mean_v not_o to_o the_o grave_n which_o receive_v their_o body_n only_o but_o ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la that_o be_v to_z bell_z a_o common_a receptacle_n or_o place_n for_o their_o soul_n also_o depart_v as_o well_o of_o those_o soul_n that_o be_v to_o be_v in_o rest_n as_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v in_o pain_n &_o torment_n all_o the_o soul_n both_o good_a &_o bad_a that_o then_o die_v go_v downward_n &_o therefore_o the_o place_n of_o both_o sort_n be_v call_v in_o all_o the_o tongue_n by_o a_o word_n answerable_a to_o this_o word_n hell_n to_o signify_v a_o lower_n place_n beneath_o not_o only_o of_o torment_n but_o also_o of_o rest_n 9_o so_o we_o say_v in_o our_o creed_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o descend_v into_o hell_n according_a to_o his_o soul_n 3._o epitaph_n nepot_n c._n 3._o so_o s._n hierom_n speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n say_v simo_n abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n in_o inferno_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o calorum_fw-la regno_fw-la that_o be_v if_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n be_v in_o hell_n who_o be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o again_o ante_fw-la christum_fw-la abraham_n apud_fw-la inferos_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la latro_fw-la in_o paradiso_n that_o be_v before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n abraham_n be_v in_o hell_n after_o his_o come_n the_o thief_n be_v in_o paradise_n and_o lest_o a_o man_n may_v object_v 16._o luc._n 16._o that_o lazarus_n be_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n see_v the_o rich_a glutton_n a_o far_o of_o in_o hell_n and_o therefore_o both_o abraham_n and_o lazarus_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n 13._o see_v s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 85._o v._n 13._o the_o say_v holy_a doctor_n resolve_v it_o that_o abraham_n and_o lazarus_n also_o be_v in_o hell_n but_o in_o a_o place_n of_o great_a rest_n &_o refresh_n and_o therefore_o very_o far_o of_o from_o the_o miserable_a wretched_a glutton_n that_o lie_v in_o torment_n 10_o his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o effect_n if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o lazarus_n be_v see_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o a_o place_n of_o refresh_v even_o before_o christ_n come_n true_a it_o be_v but_o what_o be_v that_o in_o comparison_n quid_fw-la simile_n infernus_fw-la &_o regna_fw-la calorum_fw-la what_o have_v hell_n and_o heaven_n like_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v abraham_n in_o deed_n and_o lazarus_n and_o consequent_o many_o other_o be_v in_o place_n of_o rest_n but_o yet_o in_o hell_n till_o christ_n come_v &_o in_o such_o rest_n as_o have_v no_o comparison_n with_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n and_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v this_o matter_n sometime_o 33._o epist_n 99_o ad_fw-la euod_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr li._n 12._o c._n 33._o &_o doubt_v whether_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v call_v hell_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o hell_n be_v take_v at_o any_o time_n in_o the_o good_a part_n for_o of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n &_o of_o a_o three_o place_n where_o the_o patriarch_n remain_v until_o christ_n come_a not_o heaven_n but_o call_v abraham_n bosom_n he_o doubt_v not_o but_o be_v most_o assure_v the_o same_o holy_a doctor_n in_o a_o other_o place_n as_o be_v better_o resolve_v doubt_v not_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n 13._o in_o psal_n 85._o v._n 13._o thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o lower_n hell_n to_o make_v this_o one_o good_a sense_n of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o lower_n hell_n be_v it_o wherein_o the_o damn_a be_v torment_v the_o high_a hell_n be_v that_o wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a rest_v call_v both_o place_n by_o the_o name_n of_o hell_n 11_o and_o sure_o of_o his_o marvellous_a humility_n and_o wisdom_n he_o will_v have_v be_v much_o more_o resolute_a herein_o if_o he_o have_v hard_o the_o opinion_n of_o s._n hierom_n who_o he_o often_o consult_v in_o such_o question_n and_o of_o other_o father_n who_o in_o this_o point_n speak_v most_o plain_o that_o abraham_n bosom_n or_o the_o place_n where_o the_o patriarch_n rest_v be_v some_o part_n of_o hell_n citato_fw-la joco_n citato_fw-la tertullian_n li._n 4._o advers_a martion_n say_v i_o know_v that_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n be_v no_o heavenly_a place_n but_o only_o the_o high_a hell_n or_o the_o high_a part_n of_o hell_n of_o which_o speech_n of_o the_o father_n rise_v afterward_o that_o other_o name_n limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la that_o be_v the_o very_a brim_n or_o uppermost_a &_o outmost_a part_n of_o hell_n where_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n rest_v thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o patriarch_n themselves_o be_v as_o then_o in_o hell_n though_o they_o be_v there_o in_o a_o place_n of_o rest_n in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n hierom_n say_v again_o ante_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la christi_fw-la not_o we_o in_o judaea_n deus_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la qui_fw-la noverant_fw-la eum_fw-la tamen_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la trahebantur_fw-la that_o be_v before_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n god_n be_v know_v in_o jury_n and_o they_o themselves_o that_o know_v he_o yet_o be_v draw_v unto_o hell_n 5._o hom._n quod_fw-la christus_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la to_o 5._o s._n chrysostom_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o esay_n i_o will_v break_v the_o brazen_a gate_n and_o bruise_v the_o iron_n bar_v in_o piece_n and_o will_v open_v the_o treasure_n darken_v etc._n etc._n infernus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d infernus_fw-la so_o he_o call_v hell_n say_v he_o for_o although_o it_o be_v hell_n yet_o it_o hold_v the_o holy_a soul_n and_o precious_a vessel_n abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n mark_v that_o he_o say_v though_o it_o be_v hell_n yet_o there_o be_v the_o just_a man_n at_o that_o time_n till_o our_o saviour_n christ_n come_v to_o deliver_v they_o from_o thence_o 12_o therefore_o do_v jacob_n say_v i_o will_v go_v down_o to_o my_o son_n unto_o hel._n and_o again_o he_o say_v 42._o gen._n 42._o if_o any_o misfortune_n happen_v to_o benjamin_n by_o the_o way_n you_o shall_v bring_v my_o gray_a head_n with_o sorrow_n unto_o hell_n which_o be_v repeat_v again_o twice_o in_o the_o chapter_n 44._o by_o which_o phrase_n the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v signify_v not_o only_a death_n but_o also_o the_o descend_v at_o that_o time_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o soul_n into_o hell_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o all_o